Upload
others
View
2
Download
0
Embed Size (px)
Citation preview
A CONCISE
HISTORY OF
MATHEMATICS
STRUIK
A CONCISE HISTORYOF MATHEMATICS
BELL
DIRK J. STRUIKProfessor ofMathematics, Massachussetts Institute of Technology
i
Professor Struik has achieved the
seemingly impossible task of compress-
ing the history of mathematics into less
than three hundred pages. By stressing
the unfolding ofa few main ideas and byminimizing references to other develop-
ments, the author has been able to fol-
low Egyptian, Babylonian, Chinese,
Indian, Greek, Arabian, and Western
mathematics from the earliest records to
the beginning of the present century. Hehas based his account of nineteenth cen-
tury advances on persons and schools
rather than on subjects as the treatment
by subjects has already been used in
existing books. Important mathema-ticians whose work is analysed in detail
are Euclid, Archimedes, Diophantos,
Hammurabi, Bernoulli, Fermat, Euler,
Newton, Leibniz, Laplace, Lagrange,
Gauss, Jacobi, Riemann, Cremona,
Betti, and others. Among the 47 illustra-
tions arc portraits ofmany ofthese great
figures. Each chapter is followed by a
select bibliography.
CHARLES WILSON
A CONCISE HISTORY
OF
MATHEMATICSby
DIRK. J. STRUIKProfessor of Mathematics
at the Massachusetts Institute of Technology
LONDONG. BELL AND SONS LTD
'954
Copyright byDover Publications, Inc., U.S.A.
Printed in Great Britain by
Butler & Tanner Ltd., Frame and London
FOR RUTH
CONTENTS
Introduction xi
The Beginnings 1
The Ancient Orient 13
Greece 39
The Orient after the Decline of Greek Society 83
The Beginnings in Western Europe 98
The Seventeenth Century 125
The Eighteenth Century 163
The Nineteenth Century 201
Index 289
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
Geometrical Patterns Developed by American Indians 6
Neolithic Pottery Pattern 7
Egyptian Pottery Pattern 8
Pole House Dwellers Pattern 8
Patterns from Urns near Oedenburg 8
Predynastic Egyptian Pottery 10
Page from the Great Papyrus Rhind 20-21
One Side of a Cuneiform Text 27
Portion of a Page from the First Edition of Euclid's
Elements, 1482 51
Two Pages from Archimedes Opera Omnia 62-63
Tomb of Omar Khayyam in Nishapur 90
Luca Pacioli with the Young Duke of Urbino 111
Francois Viete 117
John Napier 120
Johann Kepler 128
Galileo 130
Facsimile Page of Descartes' La Geometric 133
Ren6 Descartes 135
Pascal Explains to Descartes His Plans for Experiments in
Weight 137
Christiaan Huygens 143
Reproduction of Leaflet Published by Pascal, 1(540 146
Blaise Pascal 147
Sir Isaac Newton 150
Gottfried Wilhelm von Leibniz 155
One Page from Leibniz's First Paper on the Calculus 159
Leonard Euler 170
The Pages in Euler's Introductio where e* = cos x + i
sin x is Introduced 172-173
Jean Le Rond D'Alembert 183
Joseph Louis Lagrange 189
Pierre Simon Laplace 193
Jean Etienne Montucla 197
Carl Friedrich Gauss 204
Adrien Marie Legendre 210
Gaspard Monge 214
Evariste Galois 224
Georg Friedrich Bemhard Riemann 233
Karl Weierstrass 238
Georg Cantor 242
Jakob Steincr
Xicolai Ivanovitch Lobachevsky
Arthur Cayley
James Joseph Sylvester
William Rowan Hamilton
Felix Klein
Marius Sophus Lie
T. J. Stieltjes
Henri Poincare
247
252
257
261
264
270
273
277
279
INTRODUCTION
1. Mathematics is a vast adventure in ideas; its his-
tory reflects some of the nobiest thoughts of countless
generations. It was possible to condense this history
into a book of less than three hundred pages only by
subjecting ourselves to strict discipline, sketching the
unfolding of a few main ideas and minimizing reference
to other developments. Bibliographical details had to
be restricted to an outline; many relatively important
authors—Roberval, Lambert, Schwarz—had to be by-
passed. Perhaps the most crippling restriction was the
insufficient reference to the general cultural and socio-
logical atmosphere in which the mathematics of a period
matured—or was stifled. Mathematics has been in-
fluenced by agriculture, commerce and manufacture, bywarfare, engineering and philosophy, by physics and
by astronomy. The influence of hydrodynamics on func-
tion theory, of Kantianism and of surveying on ge-
ometry, of electromagnetism on differential equations,
of Cartesianism on mechanics and of scholasticism onthe calculus could only be indicated in a few sentences
—
or perhaps a few words—yet an understanding of the
course and content of mathematics can only be reachedif all these determining factors are taken into considera-
tion. Often a reference to the literature has had to re-
place an historical analysis. Our story ends by 1900, for
we do not feel competent to judge the work of our
contemporaries.
We hope that despite these restrictions we have beenable to give a fairly honest description of the main
xii INTRODUCTION
trends in the development of mathematics throughout
the ages and of the social and cultural setting in which
it took place. The selection of the material was, of
course, not exclusively based on objective factors, but
was influenced by the author's likes and dislikes, his
knowledge and his ignorance. As to his ignorance, it
was not always possible to consult all sources first-hand
;
too often second- or even third-hand sources had to be
used. It is therefore good advice, not only with respect
to this book, but with respect to all such histories, to
check the statements as much as possible with the
original sources. This is a good principle for more rea-
sons than one. Our knowledge of authors such as Euclid,
Diophantos, Descartes, Laplace, Gauss, or Riemannshould not be obtained exclusively from quotations or
histories describing their works. There is the sameinvigorating power in the original Euclid or Gauss as
there is in the original Shakespeare, and there are places
in Archimedes, in Format, or in Jacobi which are as
beautiful as Horace or Emerson.
Among the principles which have led the author in
the presentation of his material are the following:
1. Stress the continuity and affinity of the Oriental
civilizations, rather than the mechanical divisions
between Egyptian, Babylonian, Chinese, Indian,
and Arabian cultures.
2. Distinguish between established fact, hypothesis,
and tradition, especially in Greek mathematics.
3. Relate the two trends in Renaissance mathematics,
the arithmetical-algebraic and the "fluctional," re-
INTRODUCTION XIII
spectively, to the commercial and the engineering
interests of the period.
4. Base the exposition of Nineteenth Century mathe-
matics on persons and schools rather than on sub-
jects [Here Felix Klein's" history could be used as
a primary guide. An exposition by subjects can be
found in the books by Cajori and Bell, or with the
more technical details, in the "Encyklopajdie der
mathematischen Wissenschaften" (Leipzig, 1898-
1935, 24 vols.) and in Pascal's "Repertorium der
hoheren Mathematik" (Leipzig 1910-29, 5 vols.).]
2. We list here some of the most important books on
the history of mathematics as a whole. Such a list is
superfluous for those who can consult G. Sarton, The
Study of the History of Mathematics (Cambridge, 1936,
103 pp.) which not only has an interesting introduction
to our subject but also has complete bibliographical
information.
English texts to be consulted are:
R. C. Archibald, Outline of the History of Mathematics
(Amer. Math. Monthly 561, Jan. 1949, 6th ed.)
This issue of 1 14 pp. contains an excellent summary and many
bibliographic references.
F. Cajori, A History of Mathematics (London, 2nd
ed., 1938).
This is a standard text of 514 pp.
!>• E. Smith, History of Mathematics (London, 1923-
25, 2 vols.).
This book is mainly restricted to elementary mathematics but
riv INTRODUCTION
has references concerning all leading mathematicians. It contains
many illustrations.
E. T. Bell, Men. of Mathematics (Pelican Books,
1953).
E. T. Bell, The Development of Mathematics (New York-
London, 2nd ed., 1945).
These two books contain a wealth of material, both on the mathe-
maticians and on their works. The emphasis of the second bookis on modern mathematics.
Dealing mainly with elementary mathematics are:
V. Sanford, A Short History of Mathematics (London,
1930).
W. W. Rouse Ball, A Short Account of the History of
Mathematics (London, 6th. ed., 1915).
An older, very readable but antiquated text.
The standard work on the history of mathematics is
still:
M. Cantor, Vorlesungen iiber Geschichte der Mathematik
(Leipzig, 1900-08, 4 vols.).
This enormous work, of which the fourth volume was written bya group of specialists under Cantor's direction, covers the history
of mathematics until 1799. It is here and there antiquated andoften incorrect in details, but it remains a good book for a first
orientation.
Corrections by G. Enestrdm a. o. in the volumes of "Bibliotheca
mathematica."
Other German books are
:
H. G. Zeuthen, Geschichte der Mathematik im Altertum
INTRODUCTION XV
und MittelaUer (Copenhagen, 1896; French ed.,
Paris, 1902).
H. G. Zeuthen, Geschichte der Mathematik im XVI und
XVII Jahrhundert (Leipzig, 1903).
S. Giinther—H. Wieleitner, Geschichte der Mathematik
(Leipzig, 2 vols.). I (1908) written by Giinther; II
(1911-21, 2 parts) written by Wieleitner. Ed. by
Wieleitner (Berlin, 1939).
J. Tropfke, Geschichte der Elementar-Mathematik (Leip-
zig, 2d ed., 1921-24, 7 vols.; vols. I-IV in 3d ed.
1930-34).
Die Kultur der Gegenwart III, 1 (Leipzig-Berlin, 1912);
contains:
H. G. Zeuthen, Die Mathematik im Altertum und im MittelaUer;
A. Voss, Die Beziehungen der Mathematik zur allgemeinen Kultur;
H. E. Timerding, Die Verbreitung mathemalUchen Wissene undmathematUcher Auffassung.
The oldest text book in the history of mathematics is
in French:
J. E. Montucla, Histoire des matMmatiques (Paris, newed., 1799-1802, 4 vols.).
This book, first published in 1758 (2 vols.), also deals with appliedmathematics. It is still good reading.
A good Italian book is:
G- Loria, Storia delle matematiche (Turin, 1929-33,
3 vols.).
XVI INTRODUCTION
There also exist anthologies of mathematical works:
D. E. Smith, A Source Book in Mathematics (London,
1929).
H. Wicleitncr, Mathematischc Quellenbucher (Berlin,
1927-29, 4 small vols.).
A. Speiser, Klassisclie Stiicke der Mathematik (Zurich-
Leipzig, 1925).
There also exist histories of special subjects of which
we must mention
:
L. E. Dickson, History of the Theory of Numbers (Wash-
ington, 1919-27, 3 vols.).
T. Muir, The Theory of Determinants in the Historical
Order of Development (London, 1900-23, 4 vols.);
with supplement, Contrilnitions to the History of
Determinants 1900-20 (London, 1930).
A. von Braunmiihl, Vorlesungen iiber Geschichte der Truj-
onometrie (Leipzig, 1900-03, 2 vols.).
T. Dant/.ig. Number. Tlie Language afSciena (NewYork, 3rd ed., 1943, also London, 1940).
J. L. Coolidgc, A History of Geometrical Methods (Ox-
ford, 1940).
G. Loria, II passalo e il presenle delle principali tcorie
geometriche (Turin, 1th. ed., 1931).
G. Loria, Storia delta geomeiria descrittiva dalle origini
sino ai giorni ywstri (Milan, 1921).
G. Loria, Curve piani speciali algebriche e transcendent!
INTRODUCTION xvu
(Milan, 1930, 2 vols.) ; German edition (previously
published Leipzig, 1910-11, 2 vols.).
F. Cajori, A History ofMathematical Notations (Chicago,
1928-29, 2 vols.).
L. C. Karpinski, The History of Arithmetic (Chicago,
1925).
II. M. Walker, Studies in the History of Statistical
Methods (Baltimore, 1929).
R. Reiff, Geschichte der unendlichen Reihen (Tubingen,
1889).
I. Todhunter, History of the Progress of the Calculus of
Variations during the Nineteenth Century (Cam-bridge, 1861).
I. Todhunter, History of the Mathematical Theory of
Probability from the Time of Pascal to that of Laplace
(Cambridge, 1865).
I. Todhunter, A History of the Mathematical Theories of
Attraction and the Figure of the Earth from the Timeof Newton to that of Laplace (London, 1873).
I- L. Coolidge, The Mathematics of Great Amateurs (Ox-ford, 1949).
R. C. Archibald, Mathematical Table Makers (New York,1948).
Other books will be mentioned at the end of thedifferent chapters.
xviii INTRODUCTION
The history of mathematics is also discussed in the
books on the history of science in general. The standard
work is:
G. Sarton, Introduction to the History of Science
(Washington-Baltimore, 1927-48, 3 vols.).
This leads up to the Fourteenth Century1 and can
be supplemented by the essay:
G. Sarton, The Study of the History of Science, with an
Introductory Bibliography (Cambridge, 1936).'
A good text for school use is:
W. T. Sedgwick—H. W. Tyler, A Short History of
Science (New York, 3rd ed., 1948).
Also useful are the ten articles by G. A. Miller called
A first lesson in the history of mathematics, A second
lesson, etc., in "National Mathematics Magazine" Vols.
13 (1939)-19 (1945).
Periodicals dealing with the history of mathematics
or of science in general are
:
"Bibliotheca mathematical ser. 1-3 (1884-1914)
"Scripta mathematica" (1932-present)
"Isis" (1913-present)
The author wishes to express his appreciation to
Dr. Neugebauer whose willingness to read the first
chapters of a concise history op mathematics has
resulted in several improvements.
'We have followed in this book Sarton's transcription of Greek
and Oriental names.
•See also G. Sarton's book mentioned on p. 286.
INTRODUCTION XIX
In this reprint we have corrected several misprints
and errors which had slipped into the first printing.
We would like to express to R. C. Archibald, E. J.
Dyksterhuis, S. A. Joffe, and other readers our appre-
ciation of their help in detecting these inaccuracies.
CHAPTER I
The Beginnings
1. Our first conceptions of number and form date
back to times as far removed as the Old Stone Age, the
Paleolithicum. Throughout the hundreds or more mil-
lennia of this period men lived in caves, under condi-
tions differing little from those of animals, and their
main energies were directed towards the elementary
process of collecting food wherever they could get it.
They made weapons for hunting and fishing, developed
a language to communicate with each other, and in the
later paleolithic ages enriched their lives with creative
art forms, statuettes and paintings. The paintings in
caves of France and Spain (perhaps c. 15000 years ago)may have had some ritual significance; certainly theyreveal a remarkable understanding of form.
Little progress was made in understanding numericalvalues and space relations until the transition occurredfrom the mere gathering of food to its actual production,
from hunting and fishing to agriculture. With this
fundamental change, a revolution in which the passiveattitude of man toward nature turned into an activeone, we enter the New Stone Age, the Neolithicum.This great event in the history of mankind occurred
perhaps ten thousand years ago, when the ice sheetwhich covered Europe and Asia began to melt and maderoom for forests and deserts. Nomadic wandering insearch of food came slowly to an end. Fishermen andunters were in large part replaced by primitive farmers.
A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Such farmers, remaining in one place as long as the soil
stayed fertile, began to build more permanent dwellings
;
villages emerged as protection against the climate and
against predatory enemies. Many such neolithic settle-
ments have been excavated. The remains show how
gradually elementary crafts such as pottery, carpentry,
and weaving developed. There were granaries, so that
the inhabitants were able to provide against winter
and hard times by establishing a surplus. Bread was
baked, beer was brewed, and in late neolithic times
copper and bronze were smelted and prepared. Inven-
tions were made, notably of the potter's wheel and the
wagon wheel; boats and shelters were improved. All
these remarkable innovations occurred only within local
areas and did not always spread to other localities. The
American Indian, for example, did not learn of the
existence of the wagon wheel until the coming of the
white man. Nevertheless, as compared with the paleo-
lithic times, the tempo of technical improvement was
enormously accelerated.
Between the villages a considerable trade existed,
which so expanded that connections can be traced
between places hundreds of miles apart. The discovery
of the arts of smelting and manufacturing, first copper
then bronze tools and weapons, strongly stimulated this
commercial activity. This again promoted the further
formation of languages. The words of these languages
expressed very concrete things and very few abstrac-
tions, but there was already some room for simple
numerical terms and for some form relations. ManyAustralian, American, and African tribes were in this
stage at the period of their first contact with white
THE BEGINNINGS 3
men ; some tribes are still living in these conditions so
that it is possible to study their habits and forms of
expression.
2. Numerical terms—expressing some of "the most
abstract ideas which the human mind is capable of
forming," as Adam Smith has said—came only slowly
into use. Their first occurrence was qualitative rather
than quantitative, making a distinction only between
one (or better "a"—"a man"—rather than " one man")
and two and many. The ancient qualitative origin of
numerical conceptions can still be detected in the
special dual terms existing in certain languages such
as Greek or Celtic. When the number concept was ex-
tended higher numbers were first formed by addition:
3 by adding 2 and 1, 4 by adding 2 and 2, 5 by adding
2 and 3.
Here is an example from some Australian tribes:
Murray River: 1 = enea, 2 = pctcheval, 3 = petcheval-enea,
4 = petcheval petcheval.
Kamilaroi: 1 = mal, 2 = bulan, 3 = guliba, 4 - bulan bulan,
5 — bula guliba, 6 — guliba guliba1.
The development of the crafts and of commerce stim-
ulated this crystallization of the number concept. Num-bers were arranged and bundled into larger units,
usually by the use of the fingers of the hand or of bothhands, a natural procedure in trading. This led to
numeration first with five, later with ten as a base,
completed by addition and sometimes by subtraction,
'L. Conant, The Number Concept (London, 1896), pp. 106-1«7. with many similar examples.
A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
so that twelve was conceived aslO + 2, or9asl0— 1.
Sometimes 20, the number of fingers and toes, was
selected as a base. Of 307 number systems of primitive
American peoples investigated by W. C. Eels, 146 were
decimal, 106 quinary and quinary decimal, vigesimal
and quinary vigesimal1. The vigesimal system in its
most characteristic form occurred among the Mayas
of Mexico and the Celts in Europe.
Numerical records were kept by means of bundling,
strokes on a stick, knots on a string, pebbles or shells
arranged in heaps of fives—devices very much like
those of the old time inn-keeper with his tally stick.
From this method to the introduction of special sym-
bols for 5, 10, 20, etc. was only a step, and we find
exactly such symbols in use at the beginning of written
history, at the so-called dawn of civilization.
The oldest example of the use of a tally stick dates
back to paleolithic times and was found in 1937 in
Vestonice (Moravia). It is the radius of a young wolf,
7 in. long, engraved with 55 deeply encised notches, of
which the first 25 are arranged in groups of 5. They are
followed by a simple notch twice as long which termi-
nates the series; then, starting from the next notch,
also twice as long, a new series runs up to 30 .
It is therefore clear that the old saying found in Jacob
Grimm and often repeated, that counting started as
finger counting, is incorrect. Counting by fingers, that
is, counting by fives and tens, came only at a certain
stage of social development. Once it was reached, num-
>W. C. Eels., Number Systems of North American Indians, Am.
Math. Monthly 20 (1913), p. 293.
'Isis 28 (1938) pp. 462-463, from illustrated London News,
Oct. 2, 1937.
THE BEGINNINGS 5
bers could be expressed with reference to a base, with
the aid of which large numbers could be formed; thus
originated a primitive type of arithmetic. Fourteen was
expressed as 10 + 4, sometimes as 15 - 1. Multiplica-
tion began where 20 was expressed not as 10 + 10,
but as 2 X 10. Such dyadic operations were used for
millennia as a kind of middle road between addition
and multiplication, notably in Egypt and in the pre-
Aryan civilization of Mohenjo-Daro on the Indus.
Divisions began where 10 was expressed as "half of a
body", though conscious formation of fractions re-
mained extremely rare. Among North American tribes,
for instance, only a few instances of such formations
are known, and this is in almost all cases only of 1/2,
although sometimes also of 1/3 or 1/4.1 A curious phe-
nomenon was the love of very large numbers, a love
perhaps stimulated by the all-too-human desire to exag-
gerate the extent of herds or of enemies slain; remnants
of this tendency appear in the Bible and in other sacred
writings.
3. It also became necessary to measure the length
and contents of objects. The standards were rough and
often taken from parts of the human body, and in this
way units originated like fingers, feet, or hands. Nameslike ell, fathom, cubit also remind us of this custom.
When houses were built, as among the agricultural
Indians or the pole house dwellers of Central Europe,
'G. A. Miller has remarked that the words one-half, semis,
moitie have no direct connection with the words two, duo, deux
(contrary to one-third, one-fourth, etc.), which seems to show that
the conception of H originated independent of that of integer.
Nat. Math. Magazine 13 (1939) p. 272.
THE BEGINNINGS 7
rules were laid down for building along straight lines
and at right angles. The word "straight" is related to
"stretch," indicating operations with a rope1
; the work
"line" to "linen," showing the connection between the
craft of weaving and the beginnings of geometry. This
was one way in which interest in mensuration evolved.
Neolithic man also developed a keen feeling for geo-
metrical patterns. The baking and coloring of pottery,
the plaiting of rushes, the weaving of baskets and tex-
tiles, and later the working of metals led to the cultiva-
tion of plane and spatial relationships. Dance patterns
must also have played a role. Neolithic ornamentation
rejoiced in the revelation of congruence, symmetry,
and similarity. Numerical relationships might enter
into these figures, as in certain prehistoric patterns
which represent triangular numbers; others display
"sacred" numbers.
Here follow some interesting geometrical patterns
occurring in pottery, weaving or basketry.
Fio. 1.'
This can be found on neolithic pottery in Bosnia and on objects
of art in the Mesopotamia!! Ur-period*.
GEOMETRICAL PATTERNS DEVEI.OPED BY AMERICAN INDIANS
(From Spier)
'Thename "rope-stretchers" (Greek: "harpedonaptai," Arabic:
"massah," Assyrian: "masihanu") was attached in many coun-
tries to men engaged in surveying—see S. Gandz, Quellen undSlvdien zur Geschichte der Malhematih I (1930) pp. 255-277.
*W. Lietzmann, Geomelrie und Praehistorie, Isis 20(1933) pp.
436-439.
A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
Fia. 2.
This exists on Egyptian
pottery of the Predynastic
period (4000-3500 B.C.) 1.
Fiq. 3.
These patterns were used bypole house dwellers near Lju-
bljana (Yugoslavia) in the
Hallstatt-period (Central Eu-rope, 1000-500 B.C.)'.
Fia. 4.
These rectangles filled with
triangles, triangles filled
with circles, are from urns
in graves near Sopron
in Hungary. They showattempts at the formation
of triangular numbers,
which played an impor-
tant role in Pythagorean
mathematics of a later
period.*
'D. E. Smith, History of Mathematics (Ginn & Co., 1923) I
p 15.
»M. Hoernes, Urgeschichte der bildenden Kunst in Europa(Vienna, 1915).
•See also F. Boas, General Anthropology (1930) p. 273.
THE BEGINNINGS 9
Patterns of this kind have remained popular through-
out historical times. Beautiful examples can be found on
dipylon vases of the Minoan and early Greek periods,
in the later Byzantine and Arabian mosaics, on Persian
and Chinese tapestry. Originally there may have been
a religious or magic meaning to the early patterns, but
their esthetic appeal gradually became dominant.
In the religion of the Stone Age we can discern a
primitive attempt to contend with the forces of nature.
Religious ceremonies were deeply permeated with magic,
and this magical element was incorporated into existing
conceptions of number and form as well as in sculpture,
music, and drawing. There were magical numbers, such
as 3, 4, 7 and magical figures such as the Pentalpha and
the Swastica. Some authors have even considered this
aspect of mathematics the determining factor in its
growth 1
, but though the social roots of mathematics
may have become obscured in modern times, they are
fairly obvious during the early section of man's history.
"Modern" numerology is a leftover from magical rites
dating back to neolithic, and perhaps even to paleo-
lithic, times.
4. Even among very primitive tribes we find somereckoning of time and, consequently, some knowledgeof the motion of sun, moon, and stars. This knowledgeattained its first more scientific character when farmingand trade expanded. The use of a lunar calendar goesvery far back into the history of mankind, the changingaspects of vegetation being connected with the changes
lW. J. McGee, Primitive Numbers, Nineteenth Annual Report,Bureau Amer. Ethnology 1897-98 (1900) pp. 825-851.
Courtesy of The Metropolitan Muteum of Art
PREDYNABTIC EGYPTIAN POTTERY
THE BEGINNINGS 11
of the moon. Primitive people also pay attention to the
solstices or rising of the Pleiades at dawn. The earliest
civilized people attributed a knowledge of astronomy to
their most remote, prehistoric periods. Other primitive
peoples used the constellations as guides in navigation.
From this astronomy resulted some knowledge of the
properties of the sphere, of angular directions, and of
circles.
5. These few illustrations of the beginnings of mathe-
matics show that the historical growth of a science does
not necessarily pass through the stages in which we now
develop it in our instruction. Some of the oldest geo-
metrical forms known to mankind, such as knots and
patterns, only received full scientific attention in recent
years. On the other hand some of our more elementary
branches of mathematics, such as the graphical rep-
resentation or elementary statistics, date back to com-
paratively modern times. As A. Speiscr has remarked
with some asperity: "Already the pronounced tendency
toward tediousness, which seems to be inherent in
elementary mathematics, might plead for its late origin,
since the creative mathematician would prefer to pay
his attention to the interesting and beautiful prob-
lems.'"
Literature.
Apart from the texts by Conant, Eels, Smith, Lietz-
mann, McGee, and Speiser already quoted, see:
lA. Speiser, Theorie der Gruppen von endlicher Ordnung (Leip-zig 1925, reprint New York 1945) p. 3.
12 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
R. Mcnninger, Zahlwort und Ziffer (Breslau, 1934).
D. E. Smith-J. Ginsburg, Numbers and Numerals
(N. Y. Teachers' College, 1937).
Gordon Childe, What Happened in History (Pelican
Book, 1942).
Interesting patterns are described in:
L. Spier, Plains Indian Parfleche Designs, Un. of
Washington Publ. in Anthropology 4 (1931),
pp. 293-322.
A. B. Deacon, Geometrical drawings from Malekula and
other Islands of the New Hebrides, Journ. Roy.
Anthrop. Institute 64 (1934) pp. 129-175.
M. Popova, La geomitrie dans la broderie bulgare,
Comptes Rendus, Premier Congres des Mathe-
maticiens des pays slaves (Warsaw, 1929) pp. 367-
369.
On the mathematics of the American Indians see
also:
J. E. S. Thompson, Maya Arithmetic, Contributions to
Am. Anthropology and History 36, Carnegie Inst.,
of Washington Publ. 528 (1941) pp. 37-62.
An extensive bibliography in D. E. Smith, History of
Mathematics I (1923) p. 14.
For a bibliography on the development of mathe-
matical concepts in children:
A. Riess, Number Readiness in Research (Chicago, 1947).
CHAPTER II
The Ancient Orient
1. During the fifth, fourth and third millennium B.C.
newer and more advanced forms of society evolved from
well established neolithic communities along the banks
of great rivers in Africa and Asia, in sub-tropic or
nearly sub-tropic regions. These rivers were the Nile,
the Tigris and Euphrates, the Indus and later the
Ganges, the Hoang-ho and later the Yang-tse.
The lands along these rivers could be made to growabundant crops once the flood waters were brought
under control and the swamps drained. By contrast to
the arid desert and mountain regions and plains sur-
rounding these countries the river valleys could bemade into a paradise. Within the course of the centuries
these problems were solved by the building of levees
and dams, the digging of canals, and the construction of
reservoirs. Regulation of the water supply required
coordination of activities between widely separatedlocalities on a scale greatly surpassing all previousefforts. This led to the establishment of central organsof administration, located in urban centers rather than•n the barbarian villages of former periods. The rela-
tively large surplus yielded by the vastly improved andintensive agriculture raised the standard of living forthe population as a whole, but it also created an urbanaristocracy headed by powerful chieftains. There weremany specialized crafts carried on by artisans, soldiers,clerks, and priests. Administration of the public works
313
14 A C0NCI8E HI8T0RY OF MATHEMATICS
was placed in the hands of a permanent officialdom, a
group wise in the behavior of the seasons, the motions
of the heavenly bodies, the art of land division, the
storage of food, and the raising of taxes. A script was
used to codify the requirements of the administration
and the actions of the chieftains. Bureaucrats as well as
artisans acquired a considerable amount of technical
knowledge, including metallurgy and medicine. To this
knowledge belonged also the arts of computation and
mensuration.
By now social classes were firmly established. There
were chieftains, free and tenant farmers, craftsmen,
scribes, and officials, serfs and slaves. Local chiefs so
increased in wealth and power that they rose from
feudal lords of limited authority to become local kings
of absolute sovereignty. Quarrels and wars among the
various despots led to larger domains, united under a
single monarch. These forms of society based on irri-
gation and intensive agriculture led in this way to an
"Oriental" form of despotism. Such despotism could
be maintained for centuries and then collapse, some-
times under the impact of mountain and desert tribes
attracted by the wealth of the valleys, or again through
neglect of the vast, complicated, and vital irrigation
system. Under such circumstances power might shift
from one tribal king to another, or society might break
up into smaller feudal units, and the process of unifica-
tion would start all over again. However, under all
these dynastic revolutions and recurrent transitions
from feudalism to absolutism the villages, which were
the basis of this society, remained essentially un-
changed, and with it the fundamental economic and
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 15
social structure. Oriental society moves in cycles, and
there exist even at present many communities in Asia
and Africa which have persisted for several millennia
in the same pattern of life. Progress under such con-
ditions was slow and erratic, and periods of cultural
growth might be separated by many centuries of stag-
nation and decay.
The static character of the Orient imparted a funda-
mental sanctity to its institutions which facilitated the
identification of religion with the state apparatus. The
bureaucracy often shared this religious character of the
state; in many oriental countries priests were the ad-
ministrators of the domain. Since the cultivation of
science was the task of the bureaucracy, we find in
many—but not all—oriental countries that the priests
were the outstanding carriers of scientific knowledge.
2. Oriental mathematics originated as a practical
science to facilitate computation of the calendar, ad-
ministration of the harvest, organization of public
works, and collection of taxes. The initial emphasis
was naturally on practical arithmetic and mensuration.
However, a science cultivated for centuries by a special
craft, whose task it is not only to apply it but also to
instruct its secrets, develops tendencies toward abstrac-
tion. Gradually it will come to be studied for its ownsake. Arithmetic evolved into algebra not only becauseit allowed better practical computations, but also as
the natural outgrowth of a science cultivated and de-
veloped in schools of scribes. For the same reasons
mensuration developed into the beginnings—but nomore—of a theoretical geometry.
16 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Despite all the trade and commerce in which these
ancient societies indulged, their economic core was agri-
cultural, centered in the villages, characterized by isola-
tion and traditionalism. The result was that despite
similarity in economic structure and in the essentials of
scientific lore, there always remained striking differences
between the different cultures. The seclusion of the
Chinese and of the Egyptians was proverbial. It always
has been easy to differentiate between the arts and
the script of the Egyptians, the Mesopotamians, the
Chinese, and the Indians. We can in the same way speak
of Egyptian, Mesopotamian, Chinese, and Indian math-
ematics, though their general arithmetic-algebraic na-
ture was very much alike. Even if the science of one
country progressed beyond that of another during some
period, it preserved its characteristic approach and
symbolism.
It is difficult to date new discoveries in the East.
The static character of its social structure tends to
preserve scientific lore throughout centuries or even
millennia. Discoveries made within the seclusion of a
township may never spread to other localities. Storages
of scientific and technical knowledge can be destroyed
by dynastic changes, wars, or floods. The story goes
that in 221 B.C. when China was united under one
absolute despot, Shih Huang Ti (the Great Yellow
Emperor), he ordered all books of learning to be de-
stroyed. Later much was rewritten by memory, but
such events make the dating of discoveries very dif-
ficult.
Another difficulty in dating Oriental science is due
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 17
to the material used for its preservation. The Meso-
potamian people baked clay tablets which are virtually
indestructible. The Egyptians used papyrus and a size-
able body of their writing has been preserved in the
dry climate. The Chinese and Indians used far more
perishable material, such as bark or bamboo. The
Chinese, in the Second Century A.D., began to use
paper, but little has been preserved which dates back
to the millennia before 700 A.D. Our knowledge of
Oriental mathematics is therefore very sketchy; for the
pre-Hellenistic centuries we are almost exclusively con-
fined to Mesopotamian and Egyptian material. It is
entirely possible that new discoveries will lead to a
complete re-evaluation of the relative merits of the
different Oriental forms of mathematics. For a long
time our richest historical field lay in Egypt because of
the discovery in 1858 of the so-called Papyrus Rhind,
written about 1650 B.C., but which contained much
older material. In the last twenty years our knowledge
of Babylonian mathematics has been vastly augmented
by the remarkable discoveries of 0. Neugebauer and
F. Thureau-Dangin, who decyphered a large number of
clay tablets. It has now appeared that Babylonian
mathematics was far more developed than its Oriental
counterparts. This judgement may be final, since there
exists a certain consistency in the factual character of
the Babylonian and Egyptian texts throughout the cen-
turies. Moreover, the economic development of Meso-
potamia was more advanced than that of other coun-
tries in the so-called Fertile Crescent of the Near East,
which stretched from Mesopotamia to Egypt. Meso-
18 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
potamia was the crossroads for a large number of
caravan routes, while Egypt stood in comparative iso-
lation. Added to this was the fact that the harnessing
of the erratic Tigris and Euphrates required more engin-
eering skill and administration than that of the Nile,
that "most gentlemanly of all rivers," to quote Sir
William Willcocks. Further study of ancient Hindumathematics may still reveal unexpected excellence,
though so far claims for it have not been very con-
vincing.
3. Most of our knowledge of Egyptian mathematics
is derived from two mathematical papyri: one the
Papyrus Rhind, already mentioned and containing 85
problems; the other the so-called Moscow Papyrus,
perhaps two centuries older, containing 25 problems.
These problems were already ancient lore when the
manuscripts were compiled, but there are minor papyri
of much more recent date—even from Roman times
—
which show no difference in approach. The mathematics
they profess is based on a decimal system of numeration
with special signs for each higher decimal unit—a sys-
tem with which we are familiar through the Roman sys-
tem which follows the same principle :MDCCCLXXVTII= 1878. On the basis of this system the Egyptians
developed an arithmetic of a predominantly additive
character, which means that its main tendency was to
reduce all multiplication to repeated additions. Multi-
plication by 13, for instance, was obtained by multiply-
ing first by 2, then by 4, then by 8, and adding the
results of multiplication by 4 and 8 to the original
number.
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 19
E.g. for the computation of 13 X 11:
•1
2•4
•8
11
22
44
88
Add the numbers indicated by *, which gives 143.
Many problems were very simple and did not go beyond
a linear equation with one unknown:
A quantity, its 2/3, its 1/2, and its 3/7, added together
becomes 33. What is the quantity?
The most remarkable aspect of Egyptian arithme-
tic was its calculus of fractions. All fractions were re-
duced to sums of so-called unit fractions, meaning frac-
tions with one as numerator. The only exception was
2 1 .
- = 1 — - for which there was a special symbol in
existence. The reduction to sums of unit fractions was
made possible by tables, which gave the decomposition
for fractions of the form 2/n—the only decomposition
necessary because of the dyadic multiplication. ThePapyrus Rhind has a table giving the equivalents in
unit fractions for all odd n from 5 to 331, e.g.
7 4T
28
97 56 T 679T 776
Such a calculus with fractions gave to Egyptian
mathematics an elaborate and ponderous character, and
,1, I *. ft
>l i i j i
t 4 a tit * * * *<
inIIiiffiPwinn III! mi '
i 4 4 i
"'"> A. ^ mrwi nn«=» nn«=> .... ,„,«» f=fin nn nnnn nnnn ""n ""n "It
4* «i •' «i •' 7
mi TiS4ll mi
•> 4«4 » *
'8
A 8INGLE PAGE OP THE GREAT PAPYRDS RHIND(From Chase, II, plate 56)
h#I —A T / ^™M
«if mi -» in a
01 « I -»pb J »" H f* '*'
llll«=» «=» "=» —,1:= nnnn mi mmi *i 4 * *
,/
J'»' o =
10
ti n in ii in q«i * « t tkl
i • t
"V .../
/
If dn.d
llll Ill
4 1
22 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
effectively impeded the further growth of science. This
decomposition presupposed at the same time some
mathematical skill, and there exist interesting theories
to explain the way in which the Egyptian specialists
might have obtained their results.'
The problems deal with the strength of bread and of
different kinds of beer, with the feeding of animals and
the storage of grain, showing the practical origin of
this cumbersome arithmetic and primitive algebra.
Some problems show a theoretical interest, as in the
problem of dividing 100 loaves among 5 men in such
a way that the share received shall be in arithmetical
progression, and that one seventh of the sum of the
largest three shares shall be equal to the sum of the
smallest two. We even find a geometrical progression
dealing with 7 houses in each of which there are 7 cats,
each cat watching 7 mice, etc., which reveals a knowledge
of the formula of the sum of a geometrical progression.
Some problems were of a geometrical nature, dealing
mostly with mensuration. The area of the triangle was
found as half the product of base and altitude; the
area of a circle with diameter d was given as ( d —„) ,
which led to a value of v of 256/81 = 3.1605. We also
meet some formulas for solid volumes, such as the cube,
the parallelepiped and the circular cylinder, all con-
ceived concretely as containers, mainly of grain. Themost remarkable result of Egyptian mensuration was
O. Neugebauer, Arithmetik und Rechentechnik der Agypter,
Quellea und Studien zur Geschichte der Mathematik BI (1931)
pp. 301-380. B. L. van der Waerden, Die Entatehungsgeachichte
der Ogyptiechen Bruchreehnung, vol. 4 (1938) pp. 359-382.
THE ANCIENT ORIENT
the formula for the value of the frustrun of a square
pyramid V = (h/3) (a' + ah + b*), where a and b are
the lengths of the sides of the squares and h is the height.
This result, of which no counterpart has so far been
found in other ancient forms of mathematics, is the
more remarkable since there is no indication that the
Egyptians had any notion even of the Pythagorean
theorem, despite some unfounded stories about "harpe-
donaptai", who supposedly constructed right triangles
with the aid of a string with 3 + 4 + 5 = 12 knots'.
We must here warn against exaggerations concern-
ing the antiquity of Egyptian mathematical knowledge.
All kinds of advanced science have been credited to the
pyramid builders of 3000 B.C. and before, and there is
even a widely accepted story that the Egyptians of
4212 B.C. adopted the so-called Sothic cycle for the
measurement of the calendar. Such precise mathemat-
ical and astronomical work cannot be seriously ascribed
to a people slowly emerging from neolithic conditions,
and the source of these tales can usually be traced to a
late Egyptian tradition transmitted to.us by the Greeks.
It is a common characteristic of ancient civilizations to
date fundamental knowledge back to very early times.
All available texts point to an Egyptian mathematics of
rather primitive standards. Their astronomy was on the
same general level.
4. With Mesopotamian mathematics we rise to a far
higher level than Egyptian mathematics ever obtained.
We can here even detect progress in the course of the
See S. Gands, loc. cit. p. 7.
24 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
centuries. Already the oldest texts, dating from the
latest Sumerian period (the Third Dynasty of Ur, c.
2100 B.C.)i show keen computational ability. These
texts contain multiplication tables in which a well de-
veloped sexagesimal system of numeration was super-
imposed on an original decimal system ; there are cunei-
form symbols indicating 1, 60, 3600, and also 60"', 60~ 2.
However, this was not their most characteristic feature.
Where the Egyptians indicated each higher unit by a
new symbol, these Sumerians used the same symbol but
indicated its value by its position. Thus 1 followed by
another 1 meant 61, and 5 followed by 6 followed by 3
(we shall write 5,6,3) meant 5 X 603 + 6 X 60 + 3 =
18363. This position, or place value, system did not
differ essentially from our own system of writing num-bers, in which the symbol 343 stands for 3 X 10
s +4 X 10 + 3. Such a system had enormous advantages
for computation, as we can readily see when we try to
perform a multiplication in our own system and in a
system with Roman numerals. The position system also
removed many of the difficulties of fractional arith-
metic, just as our own decimal system of writing frac-
tions does. This whole system seems to have been a
direct result of the technique of administration, as is
witnessed by thousands of texts dating from the sameperiod and dealing with the delivery of cattle, grain,
etc., and with arithmetical work based on these trans-
actions.
In this type of reckoning existed some ambiguities
since the exact meaning of each symbol was not always
clear from its position. Thus (5,6,3) might also mean5 X 60' + 6 X 60° + 3 X 60"' = 306 1/20, and the
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 25
exact interpretation had to be gathered from the con-
text. Another uncertainty was introduced through the
fact that a blank space sometimes meant zero, so that
(11,5) might stand for 11 X 603 + 5 = 39605. Even-
tually a special symbol for zero appeared, but not before
the Persian era. The so-called "invention of the zero"
was, therefore, a logical result of the introduction of
the position system, but only after the technique of
computation had reached a considerable perfection.
Both the sexagesimal system and the place value
system remained the permanent possession of mankind.
Our present division of the hour into 60 minutes and
3600 seconds dates back to these Sumerians, as well as
our division of the circle into 360 degrees, each degree
into 60 minutes and each minute into 60 seconds. There
is reason to believe that this choice of 60 rather than
10 as a unit occurred in an attempt to unify systems
of measure, though the fact that 60 has many divisors
may also have played a role. As to the place value
system, the permanent importance of which has been
compared to that of the alphabet1—both inventions
replacing a complex symbolism by a method easily
understood by a large number of people—, its history
is still wrapt in considerable obscurity. It is reasonable
to suppose that both Hindus and Greeks made its
acquaintance on the caravan routes through Babylon;
we also know that the Arabs described it as an Indian
invention. The Babylonian tradition, however, mayhave influenced all later acceptance of the position
system.
'O. Neugebauer, The History of Ancient Astronomy, Journal
of Near Eastern Studies 4 (1945) p. 12.
26 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
5. The next group of cuneiform texts dates back to
the first Babylonian Dynasty, when King Hammurabi
reigned in Babylon (1950 B.C.), and a Semitic popula-
tion had subdued the original Sumerians. In these
texts we find arithmetic evolved into a well established
algebra. Although the Egyptians of this period were
only able to solve simple linear equations, the Baby-
lonians of Hammurabi's days were in full possession of
the technique of handling quadratic equations. They
solved linear and quadratic equations in two variables,
and even problems involving cubic and biquadratic
equations. They formulated such problems only with
specific numerical values for the coefficients, but their
method leaves no doubt that they knew the general
rule.
Here is an example taken from a tablet dating from'
this period:
"An area A, consisting of the sum of two squares is 1000. The
side of one square is 2/3 of the side of the other square, diminished
by 10. What are the sides of the square?"
This leads to the equations*1 + j? - 1000, y = 2/3 x - 10
of which the solution can be found by solving the quadratic
equation
9 3
which has one positive solution x = 30.
The actual solution in the cuneiform text confines itself—as in
all Oriental problems—to the simple enumeration of the numerical
steps that must be taken to solve the quadratic equation:
"Square 10: this gives 100; subtract 100 from 1000; this gives
900," etc.
ONE SIDE OF A CUNEIFOKM TEXT NOW IN THE BRITISH MUSEUM
(From Neugebauer, Math. Keilschr. Texte, 3, II, plate 3)
28 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
The strong arithmetical-algebraic character of this
Babylonian mathematics is also apparent from its ge-
ometry. As in Egypt, geometry developed from a foun-
dation of practical problems dealing with mensuration,
but the geometrical form of the problem was usually
only a way of presenting an algebraic question. Theprevious example shows how a problem concerning the
area of a square led to a non-trivial algebraic problem,
and this example is no exception. The texts show that
the Babylonian geometry of the Semitic period was in
possession of formulas for the areas of simple rectilinear
figures and for the volumes of simple solids, though the
volume of a truncated pyramid has not yet been found.
The so-called theorem of Pythagoras was known, not
only for special cases, but in full generality. The maincharacteristic of this geometry was, however, its alge-
braic character. This is equally true of all later texts,
especially those dating back to the third period of which
we have a generous number of texts, that of the NewBabylonian, Persian, and Seleucid eras (from c. 600
B.C.—300 A.D.).
The texts of this later period are strongly influenced
by the development of Babylonian astronomy, which in
those days assumed really scientific traits, character-
ized by a careful analysis of the different ephemerides.
Mathematics became even more perfect in its compu-
tational technique; its algebra tackled problems in equa-
tions which even now require considerable numerical
skill. There exist computations dating from the Seleucid
period which go to seventeen sexagesimal places. Such
complicated numerical work. was no longer related to
problems of taxation or mensuration, but was stimu-
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 29
lated by astronomical problems or by pure love of
computation.
Much of this computational arithmetic was done with
tables, which ranged from simple multiplication tables
to lists of reciprocals and of square and cubic roots. One
table gives a list of numbers of the form ns-f- n
2, which
was used, it seems, to solve cubic equations such as xa +
x1 = a. There were some excellent approximations, y/2
was indicated by 1^ (-s/2 = 1.4142, 1-^ = 1.4167)',
and l/\/2 = .7071 by 17/24 = .7083. Square roots
seem to have been found by formulas like these:
VI = V^Th = a + h/2a =\(a + £).
It is a curious fact that in Babylonian mathematics no
better approximation for r has so far been found than
the Biblical jt = 3, the area of a circle being taken as—12
of the square of its circumference.
The equation x* + x* = a appears in a problem which Calls
for the solution of simultaneous equations xyz -\r xy = 1+1/6,y - 2/3 x, z = 12i which leads to (12*)' + (12*)' = 252, or
12s = 6 (from the table).
There also exist cuneiform texts with problems in
compound interest, such as the question of how long
it would take for a certain sum of money to double itself
'O. Neugobauer, Exact Sciences in Antiquity, Un. of Pennsyl-
vania Bicentennial Conference, Studies in Civilization, Phila-
delphia 1941, pp. 13-29 (Copenhagen. 1951).
30 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
at 20 percent interest. This leads to the equation
1 1-1 = 2, which is solved by first remarking that
3 < x < 4 and then by linear interpolation; in our
way of writing
4 - x =(1.2)* - 2
(1.2)4 - (1.2)
3 '
leading to a; = 4 years minus (2,33,20) months.
One of the specific reasons for the development of
algebra around 2000 B.C. seems to have been the use of
the old Sumerian script by the new Semitic rulers, the
Babylonians . The ancient script was, like the hiero-
glyphics, a collection of ideograms, each sign denoting a
single concept. The Semites used them for the phonetic
rendition of their own language and also took over some
signs in their old meaning. These signs now expressed
concepts, but were pronounced in a different way. Such
ideograms were well fitted for an algebraic language, as
are our present signs +, — , :, etc., which are really
also ideograms. In the schools for administrators in
Babylon this algebraic language became a part of the
curriculum for many generations, and though the em-
pire passed through the hands of many rulers—Kassites,
Assyrians, Medes, Persians—the tradition remained.
The more intricate problems date back to later
periods in the history of ancient civilization, notably to
the Persian and Seleucid times. Babylon, in those days,
was no longer a political center, but remained for manycenturies the cultural heart of a large empire, where
Babylonians mixed with Persians, Greeks, Jews, Hin-
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 31
dus, and many other peoples. There is in all the cunei-
form texts a continuity of tradition which seems to
point to a continuous local development. There is little
doubt that this local development was also stimulated
by the contact with other civilizations and that this
stimulation acted both ways. We know that Babylonian
astronomy of this period influenced Greek astronomy
and that Babylonian mathematics influenced compu-
tational arithmetic; it is reasonable to assume that
through the medium of the Babylonian schools of
scribes, Greek science and Hindu science met. The role
of Persian and Seleucid Mesopotamia in the spread of
ancient and antique astronomy and mathematics is
still poorly known, but all available evidence shows
that it must have been considerable. Medieval Arabic
and Hindu science did not only base itself on the tradi-
tion of Alexandria but also on that of Babylon.
6. Nowhere in all ancient Oriental mathematics do
we find any attempt at what we call a demonstration.
No argumentation was presented, but only the prescrip-
tion of certain rules: "Do such, do so". We are ignorant
of the way in which the theorems were found: how, for
instance, did the Babylonians become acquainted with
the theorem of Pythagoras? Several attempts exist to
explain the way in which Egyptians and Babylonians
obtained their results, but they are all of an hypothetical
nature. To us who have been educated on Euclid's
strict argumentation, this whole Oriental way of reason-
ing seems at first strange and highly unsatisfactory. Butthis strangeness wears off when we realize that most of
32 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
the mathematics we teach our present day engineers and
technicians is still of the "Do such, do so" type, with-
out much attempt at rigorous demonstration. Algebra
is still being taught in many high schools as a set of
rules rather than a science of deduction. Oriental math-
ematics never seems to have been emancipated from the
millennial influence of the problems in technology andadministration, for the use of which it had been in-
vented.
7. The question of Greek and Babylonian influence
determines profoundly the study of ancient Hindu and
Chinese mathematics. The native Indian and Chinese
scholars of later days used—and sometimes still use
—
to stress the great antiquity of their mathematics, but
there are no mathematical texts in existence which can
be definitely dated to the pre-Christian era. The oldest
Hindu texts are perhaps from the first centuries A.D.,
the oldest Chinese texts date back to an even later
period. We do know that the ancient Hindus used
decimal systems of numeration without a place value
notation. Such a system was formed by the so-called
Brahml numerals, which had special signs for each of
the numbers 1, 2, 3, , 9, 10; 20, 30, 40, ,
100; 200, 300, , 1000; 2000, •• •; these symbols
go back at least to the time of King Acoka (300 B.C.).
Then there exist the so-called " Sulvasutras," of which
parts date back to 500 B.C. or earlier, and which con-
tain mathematical rules which may be of ancient native
origin. These rules are found among ritualistic pre-
scriptions, of which some deal with the construction of
altars. We find here recipes for the construction of
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 33
squares and rectangles and expressions for the relation
of the diagonal to the sides of the square and for the
equivalence of circles and squares. There is some knowl-
edge of the Pythagorean theorem in specific cases, and
there are a few curious approximations in terms of unit
fractions, such as (in our notation)
:
^=l+| + 3l-3X3i(=1 -4142156)
J. i.i i,
i vT ~ \ 8
"*"8.29 8.29.6
T8.29.6.8/
= 18(3 - 2\/2)
The curious fact that these results of the "Sul-
vasutras" do not occur in later Hindu works shows that
we cannot yet speak of that continuity of tradition in
Hindu mathematics which is so typical of its Egyptian
and of Babylonian counterparts, and this continuity
may actually be absent, India being as large as it is.
There may have been different traditions relating to
various schools. We know, for instance, that Jainism,
which is as ancient as Buddhism (c. 500 B.C.) en-
couraged mathematical studies; in Jaina sacred books
the value x •= \/l0 is found1
.
8. The study of ancient Chinese mathematics is con-
siderably handicapped by the lack of satisfactory trans-
lations, so that we are forced to use second-hand sources,
'B. Datta, The Jaina School of Mathematics, Bulletin Calcutta
Math. Soc. 21 (1929) pp. 115-146.
34 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
mainly the reports of Mikami, Biot and Biernatzki1
,
which are all very sketchy. They give us some informa-
tion about the so-called Ten Classics (the"suan-ching"),
a collection of mathematical and astronomical texts
used for the state examination of officials in the mainmathematics section during the T'ang dynasty (618-
907 A.D.) The material contained in these texts is mucholder; the first of them, the "Chou pi," is supposed to
date back to the Chou period (1112-256 B.C.), and part
of its content may have been of ancient date even at
that period. One book outside of the Ten Classics, the" I-ching," is perhaps even more ancient than the " Choupi"; it contains some mathematics among much di-
vination and magic. Its best known mathematical con-
tribution is the magic square
4 9 2
3 5 7
8 1 6.
The number system of ancient China, as it appears
from the Ten Classics, was decimal with special sym-bols for the higher units, like the Egyptian system. It
seems that in order to express higher units the tokens
for the lower units were repeated, so that a position
system arose. .We find, for instance, in the "Sun TzG,"one of the Ten Classics dating back to the first century
A.D., a description of the use of calculating pieces for
the performance of multiplication and division. Thesepieces were made of bamboos or wood and were arranged
lK. L. Biernatzki, Die ArUhmelik der Chinesen, Crelle 52 (1866)
pp. 59-94.
THE ANCIENT ORIENT 35
so that, for instance, |, ||, T» TTi —»=
> 1 meant 1, 2,
6, 7, 10, 20, 60, respectively. This led to a position
system with 20 tokens, in which 1 TJ "1 1 II meant
6729. Here the ingenious idea of a position system mayhave resulted from the difficulty of finding an unlimited
number of single horizontal and vertical positions of
the sticks.
In the computation of the calendar a kind of sex-
agesimal decimal system was used in which 60 was a
higher unit called "cycle" (the "cycle in Cathay" of
Tennyson's poem). There are no indications, however,
that ancient Chinese arithmetic ever used its number
systems for the purpose of elaborate computations like
Babylonian mathematics. The mathematics of the Ten
Classics is of a simple kind and does not seem to go
beyond the limits of Egyptian mathematics. There is
some trigonometry, notably in the "Hai-Tao" or "Sea
Island" Classic, but since this is ascribed to the third
century A.D., we may not exclude Western influence.
Chinese mathematics is in the exceptional position
that its tradition has remained practically unbroken
until recent years, so that we can study its position in
the community somewhat better than in the case of
Egyptian and Babylonian mathematics which belonged
to vanished civilizations. We know, for instance, that
candidates for examination had to display a precisely
circumscribed knowledge of the Ten Classics and that
this examination was based mainly on the ability to
cite texts correctly from memory. The traditional lore
was thus transmitted from generation to generation
with painful conscientiousness. In such a stagnant cul-
tural atmosphere new discoveries became extraordinary
36 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
exceptions, and this again guaranteed the invariability
of the mathematical tradition. Such a tradition mightbe transmitted over millennia, only occasionally shaken
by great historical catastrophes. In India a similar con-
dition existed; here we even have examples of mathe-matical texts written in metric stanzas to facilitate
memorization. There is no particular reason to believe
that the ancient Egyptian and Babylonian practice
may have been much different from the Indian andChinese one. The emergence of an entirely new civiliza-
tion was necessary to interrupt the complete ossification
of mathematics. The different outlook on life charac-
teristic of Greek civilization at last brought mathe-
matics up to the standards of a real science.
Literature.
The Rhind Mathematical Papyrus, ed. T. E. Peet
(London, 1923).
The Rhind Mathematical Papyrus, ed. by A. B. Chace,
L. Bull, H. P. Manning and R. C. Archibald.
(Oberlin, Ohio, 8 1927-29, 2 vols.).
This work includes an extensive bibliography of Egyptian andBabylonian mathematics. Another bibliography, mostly on an-cient astronomy, in O. Neugebauer, I.e. p. 18.
Mathematischer Papyrus des staatlichen Museums der
schonen Kiinste in Moskau, ed. by W. W. Struve
and B. A. Turajeff (Berlin, 1930).*
O. Neugebauer, Vorlesungen uber Geschichte der antiken
mathematischen Wissenschaften, I. Vorgriechische
Mathematik (Berlin, 1934).
TH E ANCIENT ORIENT 37
O. Neugebauer, Mathematische Keilschrift-Texte (Berlin,
1935-37, 3 vols).
0. Neugebauer—A. Sachs, Mathematical cuneiform
texts (New Haven, 1945).
F. Thureau-Dangin, Sketch of a history of tlie sexa-
gesimal system, Osiris 7 (1939), pp. 95-141.
F. Thureau-Dangin, Textes mathematiques babyloniena
(Leiden, 1938).
There is some difference in the interpretation of
Babylonian mathematics by the two preceding authors.
An opinion is expressed by:
S. Gandz, Conflicting Interpretations of Babylonian
Mathematics, Isis 31 (1940) pp. 405-425.
A good survey of pre-Oreek mathematics in
:
R. C. Archibald, Mathematics Before the Greeks, Science
71 (1930) pp. 109-121, 342, see also 72 (1930) p. 36.
D. E. Smith, Algebra of 4000 Years Ago, Scripta mathe-
matica 4 (1936) pp. 111-125.
On Indian mathematics see the volumes of the Bul-
letin of the Calcutta Mathematical Society, and
:
B. Datta-A. N. Simha, History of Hindu Mathe-
matics (Lahore, 1935-1938, 2 vols.), (review by O.
Neugebauer, Quellen u. Studien, vol.3B(1936),
pp. 263-271).
38 A C0NCI6E HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
G. R. Kaye, Indian Mathematics, Isis 2 (1919) pp. 326-
356.
On Chinese-Japanese mathematics:
Y. Mikami, The Development of Mathematics in China
and Japan (Leipzig, 1913).
D. E. Smith—Y. Mikami, A History ofJapanese Mathe-
matics (Chicago, 1914).
There is a translation of the I-Ching, or Book of
Changes, by R. Wilhelm (New York, 1950).
On the nature of oriental society
:
K. A. Wittfogel, Die Theorie der orientalischen Gesett-
schaft, Zeitschrift fur Sozialforschung 7 (1938) pp.90-122.
See also B. L. Van der Waerden, I. c. p. 82.
CHAPTER III
Greece
1. Enormous economic and political changes occurred
in and around the Mediterranean basin during the last
centuries of the second millennium. In a turbulent at-
mosphere of migrations and wars the Bronze Age was
replaced by what has been called our Age, the Age
of Iron. Few details are known about this period of
revolutions, but we find that towards its end, perhaps
circa 900 B.C., the Minoan and Hittite empires had
disappeared, the power of Egypt and Babylonia had
been greatly reduced, and new peoples had come into
historical setting. The most outstanding of these new
peoples were the Hebrews, the Assyrians, the Phoenic-
ians, and the Greeks. The replacement of bronze by
iron brought not only a change in warfare but by cheap-
ening the tools of production increased the social sur-
plus, stimulated trade, and allowed larger participation
of the common people in matters of economy and
public interest. This was reflected in two great innova-
tions, the replacement of the clumsy script of the
Ancient Orient by the easy-to-learn alphabet and the
introduction of coined money, which helped to stimu-
late trade. The time had come when culture could no
longer be the exclusive province of an Oriental official-
dom.
The activities of the "sea-raiders", as some of the
migrating peoples are styled in Egyptian texts, were
originally accompanied by great cultural losses. The
39
40 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Minoan civilization disappeared ; Egyptian art declined;
Babylonian and Egyptian science stagnated for cen-
turies. No mathematical texts have come to us from
this transition period. When stable relations were again
established the Ancient Orient recovered mainly along
traditional lines, but the stage was set for an entirely
new type of civilization, the civilization of Greece.
The towns which arose along the coast of Asia Minor
and on the Greek mainland were no longer administra-
tion centers of an irrigation society. They were trading
towns in which the old-time feudal landlords had to
fight a losing battle with an independent, politically
conscious merchant class. During the Seventh and Sixth
Centuries B.C. this merchant class won ascendancy and
had to fight its own battles with the small traders and
artisans, the demos. The result was the rise of the Greek
polis, the self governing city state, a new social experi-
ment entirely different from the early city states of
Sumer and other Oriental countries. The most im-
portant of these city states developed in Ionia on the
Anatolian coast. Their growing trade connected them
with the shores of the whole Mediterranean, with Meso-
potamia, Egypt, Scythia and even with countries be-
yond. Milete for a long time took a leading place.
Cities on other shores also gained in wealth and im-
portance : on the mainland of Greece first Corinth, later
Athens; on the Italian coast Croton and Tarentum;
in Sicily, Syracuse.
This new social order created a new type of man. Themerchant trader had never enjoyed so much independ-
ence, but he knew that this independence was a result
of a constant and bitter struggle. The static outlook of
GREECE 41
the Orient could never be his. He lived in a period of
geographical discoveries comparable only to those of
Sixteenth Century Western Europe; he recognized no
absolute monarch or power supposedly vested in a
static Deity. Moreover, he could enjoy a certain amount
of leisure, the result of wealth and of slave labor. He
could philosophize about this world of his. The absence
of any well established religion led many inhabitants of
these coastal towns into mysticism, but also stimulated
its opposite, the growth of rationalism and the scientific
outlook.
2. Modern mathematics was born in this atmosphere
of Ionian rationalism—the mathematics which not only
asked the Oriental question "how?" but also the mod-
ern, the scientific question, "why?" The traditional
father of Greek mathematics is the merchant Thales of
Milete who visited Babylon and Egypt in the first
half of the Sixth Century. And even if his whole figure
is legendary, it stands for something eminently real. It
symbolizes the circumstances under which the founda-
tions not only of modern mathematics but also of
modern science and philosophy were established.
The early Greek study of mathematics had one main
goal, the understanding of man's place in the universe
according to a rational scheme. Mathematics helped to
find order in chaos, to arrange ideas in logical chains,
to find fundamental principles. It was the most rational
of all sciences, and though there is little doubt that the
Greek merchants became acquainted with Oriental
mathematics along their trade routes, they soon found
out that the Orientals had left most of the rational-
42 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
ization undone. Why had the isosceles triangle two
equal angles? Why was the area of a triangle equal to
half that of a rectangle of equal base and altitude? These
questions came naturally to men who asked similar
questions concerning cosmology, biology, and physics.
It is unfortunate that there are no primary sources
which can give us a picture of the early development
of Greek mathematics. The existing codices are from
Christian and Arabic times, and they are only sparingly
supplemented by Egyptian papyrus notes of a some-
what earlier date. Classical scholarship, however, has
enabled us to restore the remaining texts, which date
back to the Fourth Century B.C. and later, and wepossess in this way reliable editions of Euclid, Archi-
medes, Apollonios, and other great mathematicians of
antiquity. But these texts represent an already fully
developed mathematical science, in which historical de-
velopment is hard to trace even with the aid of later
commentaries. For the formative years of Greek mathe-
matics we must rely entirely on small fragments trans-
mitted by later authors and on scattered remarks byphilosophers and other not strictly mathematical au-
thors. Highly ingenious and patient text criticism has
been able to elucidate many obscure points in this early
history, and it is due to this work, carried on by in-
vestigators such as Paul Tannery, T. L. Heath, H. G.
Zeuthen, E. Frank and others, that we are able to
present something like a consistent, if largely hypo-
thetical, picture of Greek mathematics in its formative
years.
3. In the Sixth Century B.C. a new and vast Oriental
GREECE 43
power arose on the ruins of the Assyrian Empire: the
Persia of the Achaemenides. It conquered the Anatolian
towns, but the social structure on the mainland of
Greece was already too well established to suffer defeat.
The Persian invasion was repelled in the historic battles
of Marathon, Salamis, and Plataea. The main result of
the Greek victory was the expansion and hegemony of
Athens. Here, under Perikles in the second half of the
Fifth Century, the democratic elements became in-
creasingly influential. They were the driving force be-
hind the economic and military expansion and made
Athens by 430 not only the leader of a Greek Empire
but also the center of a new and amazing civilization
—
the Golden Age of Greece.
Within the framework of the social and political
struggles philosophers and teachers presented their the-
ories and with them the new mathematics. For the first
time in history a group of critical men, the "sophists,"
less hampered by tradition than any previous group of
learned persons, approached problems of a mathematical
nature in the spirit of understanding rather than of
utility. As this mental attitude enabled the sophists to
reach toward the foundations of exact thinking itself,
it would be highly instructive to follow their discussions.
Unfortunately, only one complete mathemathical frag-
ment of this period is extant; it is written by the Ionian
philosopher Hippokrates of Chios. This fragment repre-
sents a high degree of perfection in mathematical reason-
ing and deals, typically enough, with a curiously "im-
practical" but theoretically valuable subject, the so-
called "lunulae"—the little moons or crescents bounded
by two circular arcs.
44 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
The subject—to find certain areas bounded by two
circular arcs which can be expressed rationally in terms
of the diameters—has a direct bearing on the problem
of the quadrature of the circle, a central problem in
Greek mathematics. In the analysis of his problem1
Hippokrates showed that the mathematicians of the
Golden Age of Greece had an ordered system of plane
geometry, in which the principle of logical deduction
from one statement to another ("apagoge") had been
fully accepted. A beginning of axiomatics had been
made, as is indicated by the name of the book sup-
posedly written by Hippokrates, the "Elements" ("stoi-
cheia"), the title of all Greek axiomatic treatises in-
cluding that of Euclid. Hippokrates investigated the
areas of plane figures bounded by straight lines as well
as circular arcs. The areas of similar circular segments,
he teaches, are to each other as the squares of their
chords. Pythagoras' theorem is known to him and so is
the corresponding inequality for non-rectangular tri-
angles. The whole treatise is already in what might be
called the Euclidean tradition, but it is older than Eu-
clid by more than a century.
The problem of the quadrature of the circle is one of
the "three famous mathematical problems of anti-
quity," which in this period began to be a subject of
study. These problems were:
(1) The trisection of the angle; that is, the problem
of dividing a given angle into three equal parts.
(2) The duplication of the cube; that is, to find the
'For a modern analysis see E. Landau, Uber quadrirbare A'rets-
boqenzxoeiecke, Berichte Berliner Math. Ges. 2 (1903) pp. 1-6.
GREECE 45
side of a cube of which the volume is twice that
of a given cube (the so-called Delic cube.)
(3) The quadrature of the circle; that is, to find the
square of an area equal to that of a given square.
The importance of these problems lies in the fact that
they cannot be geometrically solved by the construction
of a finite number of straight lines and circles except
by approximation, and therefore they served as a means
of penetration into new fields of mathematics. They led
to the discovery of the conic sections, and some cubic
and quartic curves, and to one transcendental curve,
the quadratrix. The anecdotic forms, in which the prob-
lems have occasionally been transmitted (Delphic
oracles, etc.) should not prejudice us against their
fundamental importance. It occurs not infrequently
that a fundamental problem is presented in the form
of an anecdote or a puzzle—Newton's apple, Cardan's
broken promise, or Kepler's wine barrels. Mathema-
ticians of different periods, including our own, have
shown the connection between these Greek problems
and the modern theory of equations, involving con-
siderations concerning domains of rationality, algebraic
numbers, and group theory.
4. Probably outside of the group of sophists, who
were in some degree connected with the democratic
movement, stood another group of mathematically in-
clined philosophers related to the aristocratic factions.
They called themselves Pythagoreans after a rather
mythical founder of the school, Pythagoras, supposedly
a mystic, a scientist, and an aristocratic statesman.
5
46 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Where most sophists emphasized the reality of change,
the Pythagoreans stressed the study of the unchange-
able elements in nature and society. In their search for
the eternal laws of the universe they studied geometry,
arithmetic, astronomy, and music (the"quadrivium").
Their most outstanding leader was Archytas of Taren-
tum who lived about 400 and to whose school, if wefollow the hypothesis of E. Frank, much of the "Pytha-
gorean" brand of mathematics may be ascribed. Its
arithmetic was a highly speculative science, which had
little in common with the contemporary Babylonian
computational technique. Numbers were divided into
classes, odd, even, even-times-even, odd-times-odd,
prime and composite, perfect, friendly, triangular,
square, pentagonal, etc. Some of the most interesting
results concern the "triangular numbers," which repre-
sent a link between geometry and arithmetic
:
• 1, • • 3, • • • 6, • • • • 10, etc.
Our name "square numbers" had its origin in Pytha-
gorean speculations:
• 1, • • 4, • • • 9, etc.
The figures themselves are much older, since some of
them appear on neolithic pottery. The Pythagoreans
investigated their properties, adding their brand of
number mysticism and placing them in the center of a
GREECE 47
cosmic philosophy which tried to reduce all relations
to numtar relations ("everything is number"). A point
was "unity in position."
The Pythagoreans knew some properties of regular
polygons and regular bodies. They showed how the
plane can be filled by means of patterns of regular
triangles, squares, or regular hexagons, and space by
cubes, to which Aristotle later tried to add the wrong
notion that space can be filled by regular tetrahedra.
The Pythagoreans may have also known the regular
oktahedron and dodekahedron the latter figure be-
cause pyrite, found in Italy, crystallizes in dodekahedra,
and models of such figures as ornaments or magical
symbols date back to Etruscan times.
As to Pythagoras' theorem, the Pythagoreans as-
cribed its discovery to their master who was supposed
to have sacrificed a hundred oxen to the gods as a token
of gratitude. We have seen that the theorem was al-
ready known in Hammurabi's Babylon, but the first
general proof may very well have been obtained in the
Pythagorean school.
The most important discovery ascribed to the Pytha-
goreans was the discovery of the irrational by means of
incommensurable line segments. This discovery mayhave been the result of their interest in the geometric
mean a : 6 = b : c, which served as a symbol of aristo-
cracy. What was the geometric mean of 1 and 2, two
sacred symbols? This led to the study of the ratio of
the side and the diagonal of a square, and it was found
that this ratio could not be expressed by "numbers"
—
that is, by what we now call rational numbers (integers
or fractions), the only numbers recognized as such.
48 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Suppose that this ratio be p : q, in which we can always takenumbers p and q relative prime Then p* = 2q*. hence jp, andtherefore p, is even, say p = 2r. Then q must be odd, but since
a* = 2rl, it must also be even. This contradiction was not solved,
as in the Orient or in Renaissance Europe, by an extension of the
conception of number, but by rejecting the theory of numbers for
such cases and looking for a synthesis in geometry.
This discovery, which upset the easy harmony be-tween arithmetics and geometry, was probably made in
the last decades of the Fifth Century B.C. It came ontop of another difficulty, which had emerged from the
arguments concerning the reality of change, argumentswhich have kept philosophers busy from then until thepresent. This difficulty has been ascribed to Zeno of
Elea (c. 450 B.C.), a pupil of Parmenides, a conservative
philosopher who taught that reason only recognizes
absolute being, and that change is only apparent. It
received mathematical significance when infinite pro-
cesses had to be studied in such questions as the deter-
mination of the volume of a pyramid. Here Zeno's
paradoxes came in conflict with some ancient and in-
tuitive conceptions concerning the infinitely small andthe infinitely large. It was always believed that the sumof an infinite number of quantities can be made as large
as we like, even if each quantity is extremely small
(» X t = »), and also that the sum of a finite or
infinite number of quantities of dimension zero is zero
(n X = 0, » X = 0). Zeno's criticism challenged
these conceptions and his four paradoxes created a stir
of which the ripples can be observed to-day. They havebeen preserved by Aristotle and are known as the
GREECE 49
Achilles, the Arrow, the Dichotomy, and the Stadium.
They are phrased so as to stress contradictions in the
conception of motion and of time; no attempt is made
to solve the contradictions.
The gist of the reasoning will be clear from the
Achilles and the Dichotomy, which we explain in our
own words as follows:
Achilles. Achilles and a tortoise move in the same direction on
a straight line. Achilles is much faster than the tortoise, but in
order to reach the tortoise he must first pass the point P from
which the tortoise started. If he comes to P, the tortoise has
advanced to point Pi. Achilles cannot reach the tortoise until he
passed Pi, but the tortoise has advanced to a new point Pj. If
Achilles is at Ps , the tortoise has reached a new point P,, etc.
Hence Achilles can never reach the tortoise.
Dichotomy. Suppose I like to go from A to B along a line. In
order to reach B, I must first traverse half the distance AB, of AB,
and in order to reach B, I must first reach B, half way between
A and B,. This goes on indefinitely, so that the motion can never
even begin.
Zeno's arguments showed that a finite segment can
be broken up into an infinite number of small segments
each of finite length. They also showed that there is
a difficulty in explaining what we mean by saying that
a line is "composed of" points. It is very likely that
Zeno himself had no idea of the mathematical impli-
cations of his arguments. Problems leading to his para-
doxes have regularly appeared in the course of philo-
sophical and theological discussions; we recognize them
as problems concerning the relation of the potentially
and the actually infinite. Paul Tannery, however, be-
lieved that Zeno's arguments were particularly directed
50 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
against the Pythagorean idea of the space as sum ofpoints ("the point is unity in position")'. Whatever thetruth may be, Zeno's reasoning certainly influencedmathematical thought for many generations. His para-doxes may be compared to those used by Bishop Ber-keley in 1734, when he showed the logical absurditiesto which poor formulation of the principles of the cal-
culus may lead, but without offering a better foundationhimself.
Zeno's arguments began to worry the mathematicianseven more after the irrational had been discovered. Wasmathematics as ah exact science possible? Tannery2
has suggested that we may speak of "a veritable logical
scandal"—of a crisis in Greek mathematics. If this is
the case, then this crisis originated in the later periodof the Peloponnesian war, ending with the fall of Athens(404). Wc may then detect a connection between thecrisis in mathematics and that of the social system, sincethe fall of Athens spelled the doom of the empire of aslavc-'owning democracy and introduced a new periodof aristocratic supremacy—a crisis which was solvedin the spirit of the new period.
5. Typical of this new period in Greek history wasthe increasing wealth of certain sections of the ruling
"P. Tannery, La geomitrie grecque (Paris, 1887) pp. 217-261.Another opinion in B. L. Van der Waerden, Math Annalen 117(1940) pp. 141-161.
P. Tannery, La giomtlrie grecque (Paris, 1887) p. 98. Tannery,at this place, deals only with the breakdown of the ancient theoryof proportions as a result of the discovery of incommensurableline segments.
anfrfMHOM
B<TvJka.rt«
i #^t w lc ^ c V 1
3 3,5 « 2 s- =.=»-IoK-sS8o
sulci« a a.2— Sell
1Hula]
fluffs-
11111Nlit.
|1 1 If
s
09
"a
wsWft.
OY.
O
aa
9
wX
u.
oMO<P.
•<
%•AO
Ia.
52 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
classes combined with equally increased misery andinsecurity of the poor. The ruling classes based their
material existence more and more upon slavery, whichallowed them leisure to cultivate arts and sciences, butmade them also more and more averse to all manualwork. A gentleman of leisure looked down upon workwhich slaves and craftsmen did and sought relief fromworry in the study of philosophy and of personal ethics.Plato and Aristotle expressed this attitude; and it is
in Plato's "Republic" (written perhaps c. 360) that wefind the clearest expression of the ideals of the slave-owning aristocracy. The "guards" of Plato's republicmust study the "quadrivium," consisting of arithmetic,geometry, astronomy, and music, in order to understandthe laws of the universe. Such an intellectual atmospherewas conducive (at any rate in its earlier period) to adiscussion of the foundations of mathematics and tospeculative cosmogony. At least three great mathe-maticians of this period were connected with Plato'sAcademy, namely, Archytas, Theactetos (d. 369), andEudoxos (c. 408-355). Theaetetos has been creditedwith the theory of irrationals as it appears in the tenthbook of Euclid's "Elements." Eudoxos' name is con-nected with the theory of proportions which Euclidgave in his fifth book, and also with the so-called"exhaustion" method, which allowed a rigorous treat-ment of area and volume computations. This meansthat it was Eudoxos who solved the "crisis" in Greekmathematics, and whose rigorous formulations helpedto decide the course of Greek axiomatics and, to a con-siderable extent, of Greek mathematics as a whole.
GREECE 53
Eudoxos' theory of proportions did away with the
arithmetical theory of the Pythagoreans, which applied
to commensurable quantities only. It was a purely geo-
metrical theory, which, in strictly axiomatic form, madeall reference to incommensurable or commensurable
magnitudes superfluous.
Typical is Def . 5, Book V of Euclid's " Elements"
:
"Magnitudes are said to be in the same ratio, the first to the
second and the third to the fourth, when, if any equimultiples
whatever be taken of the first and third, and any equimultiples
whatever of the second and fourth, the former equimultiples
alike exceed, are alike equal to, or are alike less than, the latter
equimultiples taken in corresponding order".
The present theory of irrational numbers, developed
by Dedekind and Weierstrass, follows Eudoxos' modeof thought almost literally but by using modern arith-
metical methods has opened far wider perspectives.
The "exhaustion method" (the term "exhaust" ap-
pears first in Gregoire de Saint Vincent, 1647) was the
Platonic school's answer to Zeno. It avoided the pitfalls
of the infinitesimal by simply discarding them, by re-
ducing problems which might lead to infinitesimals to
problems involving formal logic only. When, for in-
stance, it was required to prove that the volume V of a
tetrahedron is equal to one third the volume P of a
prism of equal base and altitude, the proof consisted
in showing that both the assumptions V > 1/3 P andV < 1/3P lead to absurdities. For this purpose an axiom
was introduced, now known as the axiom of Archi-
medes, and which also underlies Eudoxos' theory of
54 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
proportions, namely, that "magnitudes are said to have
a ratio to one another which are capable, when multi-
plied, of exceeding one another" (Euclid V, Def. 4)1.
This method, which became the standard Greek and
Renaissance mode of strict proof in area and volume
computation, was quite rigorous, and can easily be
translated into a proof satisfying the requirements of
modern analysis. It had the great disadvantage that the
result, in order to be proved, must be known in advance,
so that the mathematician finds it first by some other,
less rigorous and more tentative method.
There are clear indications that such an other method
was actually used. We possess a letter from Archimedes
to Erathostenes (c. 250 B.C.), which was not discovered
until 1906, in which Archimedes described a non-rigor-
ous but fertile way of finding results. This letter is
known as the "Method". It has been suggested, notably
by S. Luria, that it represented a school of mathe-
matical reasoning competing with the school of Eu-
doxos, also dating back to the period of the "crisis"
and associated with the name of Democritus, the
founder of the atom theory. In Democritus' school,
according to the theory of Luria, the notion of the
"geometrical atom" was introduced. A line segment,
an area, or a volume was supposed to be built up of
a large, but finite, number of indivisible "atoms." Thecomputation of a volume was the summation of the
•Archimedes' version (which he explicitly attributes to Eudoxos)
is: '"When two spaces are unequal, then it is possible to add to
itself the difference by which the lesser is surpassed by the greater,
so often that every finite space will be exceeded" (in On the
Sphere and the Cylinder).
GREECE 55
volumes of all the "atoms" of which this body consists.
This theory sounds perhaps absurd, until we realise
that several mathematicians of the period before New-ton, notably Viete and Kepler, used essentially the
same conceptions, taking the circumference of a circle
as composed of a very large number of tiny line seg-
ments. There is no evidence that antiquity ever de-
veloped a rigorous method on this foundation, but our
modern limit conceptions have made it possible to
build this "atom" theory into a theory as rigorous as
the exhaustion method. Even today we use this con-
ception of the "atoms" quite regularly by setting up a
mathematical problem in the theory of elasticity, in
physics or in chemistry, reserving the rigorous "limit"
theory to the professional mathematician 1
.
The advantage of the "atom" method over the "ex-
haustion" method was that it facilitated the finding of
new results. Antiquity had thus the choice between a
rigorous but relatively sterile, and a loosely founded
but far more fertile, method. It is instructive that in
practically all the classical texts the first method was
used. This again may have a connection with the fact
that mathematics had become a hobby of a leisure class,
basing itself on slavery, indifferent to invention, and
interested in contemplation. It may also be a reflection
of the victory of Platonic idealism over Dcmokritian
'"Thus, so far as first differentials arc concerned, a small part
of a curve near a point may be considered straight and a part of
a surface plane; during a short time a particle may be considered
as moving with constant velocity and any physical process as
occurring at a constant rate". (H. B. Phillips, Differential Equa-
tions, London, 1922. p. 7.)
56 A C0NCI9E HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS GREECE 57
materialism in the realm of mathematical philosophy.
6. In 334 Alexander the Great began his conquest of
Persia. When he died at Babylon in 323 the whole
Near East had fallen to the Greeks. Alexander's con-
quests were divided among his generals and eventually
three empires emerged: Egypt under the Ptolemies;
Mesopotamia and Syria under the Seleucids; and Mace-donia under Antigonos and his successors. Even the
Indus valley had its Greek princes. The period of Hel-
lenism had begun.
The immediate consequence of Alexander's campaign
was that the advance of Greek civilization over large
sections of the Oriental world was accelerated. Egyptand Mesopotamia and a part of India were Hellenized.
The Greeks flooded the Near East as traders, merchants,
physicians, adventurers, travellers, and mercenaries.
The cities—many of them newly founded and recog-
nizable by their Hellenistic names—were under Greek
military and administrative control, and had a mixed
population of Greeks and Orientals. But Hellenism was
essentially an urban civilization. The country-side re-
mained native and continued its existence in the tra-
ditional way. In the cities the ancient Oriental culture
met with the imported civilization of Greece and partly
mixed with it, though there always remained a deep
separation between the two worlds. The Hellenistic
monarchs adopted Oriental manners, had to deal with
Oriental problems of administration, but stimulated
Greek arts, letters, and sciences.
Greek mathematics, thus transplanted to new sur-
roundings, kept many of its traditional aspects, but
experienced also the influence of the problems in ad-
ministration and astronomy which the Orient had to
solve. This close contact of Greek science with the
Orient was extremely fertile, especially during the first
centuries. Practically all the really productive work
which we call "Greek mathematics" was produced in
the relatively short interval from 350 to 200 B.C., from
Eudoxos to Apollonius, and even Eudoxos' achieve-
ments are only known to us through their interpreta-
tion by Euclid and Archimedes. And it is also remark-
able that the greatest flowering of this Hellenistic math-
ematics occurred in Egypt under the Ptolemies and
not in Mesopotamia, despite the more advanced status
of native mathematics in Babylonia.
The reason for this development may be found in the
fact that Egypt was now in a central position in the
Mediterranean world. Alexandria, the new capital, was
built on the sea coast, and became the intellectual and
economic center of the Hellenistic world. But Babylon
lingered on only as a remote center of caravan roads,
and eventually disappeared to be replaced by Ktesi-
phon-Seleucia, the new capital of the Seleucids. Nogreat Greek mathematicians, as far as we know, were
ever connected with Babylon. Antioch and Pergamum,also cities of the Seleucid Empire but closer to the
Mediterranean, had important Greek schools. The de-
velopment of native Babylonian astronomy and mathe-
matics even reached its height under the Seleucids, and
Greek astronomy received an impetus, the importance
of which is only now beginning to be better understood.
Beside Alexandria there were some other centers of
mathematical learning, especially Athens and Syracuse.
58 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS GREECE 59
Athens became an educational center, while Syracuse
produced Archimedes, the greatest of Greek mathe-
maticians.
7. In this period the professional scientist appeared,
a man who devoted his life to the pursuit of knowledge
and received a salary for doing it. Some of the most
outstanding rppresentatives of this group lived in Alex-
andria, where the Ptolemies built a great center of
learning in the so-called Museum with its famous
Library. Here the Greek heritage in science and litera-
ture was preserved and developed. The success of this
enterprise was considerable. Among the first scholars
associated with Alexandria was Euclid, one of the
most influential mathematicians of all times.
Euclid, about whose life nothing is known with any
certainty, lived probably during the time of the first
Ptolemy (306-283), to whom he is supposed to have
remarked that there is no royal road to geometry. His
most famous and most advanced texts are the thirteen
books of his "Elements" ("stoicheia"), though he is
also credited with several other minor texts. Amongthese other texts are the "Data," containing what wewould call applications of algebra to geometry but pre-
sented in strictly geometrical language. We do not knowhow many of these texts are Euclid's own and how manyare compilations, but they show at many places anastonishing penetration. They are the first full mathe-
matical texts that have been preserved from Greek
antiquity.
The" Elements" form, next to the Bible, probably the
book most reproduced and studied in the history of
the Western world. More than a thousand editions have
appeared since the invention of printing and before
that time manuscript copies dominated much of the
teaching of geometry. Most of our school geometry is
taken, often literally, from six of the thirteen books;
and the Euclidean tradition still weighs heavily on our
elementary instruction. For the professional mathema-
tician these books have always had an inescapable
fascination, and their logical structure has influenced
scientific thinking perhaps more than any other text
in the world.
Euclid's treatment is based on a strictly logical de-
duction of theorems from a set of definitions, postulates,
and axioms. The first four books deal with plane geo-
metry and lead from the most elementary projwrties
of lines and angles to the congruence of triangles) the
equality of areas, the theorem of Pythagoras (I, 47),
the construction of a square equal to a given rectangle,
the golden section, the circle, and the regular polygons.
The fifth book presents Eudoxos' theory of incommen-
surables in its purely geometrical form, and in the sixth
book this is applied to the similarity of triangles. This
introduction of similarity at such a late stage is one
of the most important differences between Euclid's pre-
sentation of plane geometry and the present one, and
must be ascribed to the emphasis laid by Euclid on
Eudoxos' novel theory of incommensurablcs-. The geo-
metrical discussion is resumed in the tenth book, often
considered Euclid's most difficult one, which contains
a geometrical classification of quadratic irrationals andof their quadratic roots, hence of what we call numbers
of a form Va + Vb. The last three books deal with
60 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
solid geometry and lead via solid angles, the volumes
of parallelepipeds, prisms, and pyramids to the sphere
and to what seems to have been intended as the climax:
the discussion of the five regular ("Platonic") bodies
and the proof that only five such bodies exist.
Books VII-IX are devoted to number theory—not to
computational technique but to such Pythagorean sub-
jects as the divisibility of integers, the summation of the
geometrical series, and some properties of prime num-bers. There we find both "Euclid's algorithm" to find
the greatest common divisor of a given set of numbers,
and "Euclid's theorem" that there are an infinite num-ber of primes (IX, 20). Of particular interest is theorem
VI, 27, which contains the first maximum problem that
has reached us, with the proof that the square, of all
rectangles of given perimeter, has maximum area. Thefifth postulate of Book I (the relation between "axioms"
and "postulates" in Euclid is not clear) is equivalent to
the so-called "parallel axiom", according to which one
and only one line can be drawn through a point parallel
to a given line. Attempts to reduce this axiom to a theo-
rem led in the Nineteenth Century to a full appreciation
of Euclid's wisdom in adopting it as an axiom and to
the discovery of other, so-called non-euclidean geo-
metries.
Algebraic reasoning in Euclid is cast entirely into
geometrical form. An expression y/A is introduced as
the side of a square of area A, a product a6 as the area
of a rectangle with sides a and b. This mode of ex-
pression was prinarily due to Eudoxos' theory of pro-
portions, which consciously rejected numerical expres-
sions for line segments and in this way dealt with in-
GREECE 61
commensurables in a purely geometrical way—"num-
bers" being conceived only as integers or rational frac-
tions.
What was Euclid's purpose in writing his "Ele-
ments"? We may assume with some confidence that
he wanted to bring together into one text three great
discoveries of the recent past: Eudoxos' theory of pro-
portions, Theactetos' theory of irrationals, and the
theory of the five regular bodies which occupied an
outstanding place in Plato's cosmology. These were all
three typically " Greek" achievements.
8. The greatest mathematician of the Hellenistic per-
iod—and of antiquity as a whole—was Archimedes
(287-212) who lived in Syracuse as adviser to King
Hiero. He is one of the few scientific figures of antiquity
who is more than a name; several data about his life
and person have been preserved. We know that he was
killed when the Romans took Syracuse, after he placed
his technical skill at the disposal of the defenders of
the city. This interest in practical applications strikes
us as odd if we compare it to the contempt in which
such interest was held in the Platonic school of his
contemporaries, but an explanation is found in the much
quoted statement in Plutarch's "Marcellus", that
"although these inventions had obtained for him the reputa-
tion of more than human sagacity, he did not deign to leave
behind any written work on such subjects, but, regarding as
ignoble and sordid the business of mechanics and every sort of
art which is directed to use and profit, he placed his whole ambi-
tion in those speculations the beauty and subtlety of which are
untainted by any admixture of the common needs of life".
6
KTKAOT METPHSJE.
aova jj oviyly L' V xq'os ipx. 8l%a 17 vxb FAH tfi
A ©'1/ A 9 &Qa 8tec tie aira xgbs xijv 0T iXdaaova
Xdyov fjjft i) ov fJbxd /.' 8" xpog rjni rj &v jaaxy
xq'os Ofi- ixan'oa y&Q_ixaxiQas 8 ty'" &6xt 17 ATi xgbg x^v rS r\ ov aaXrj ft ta' XQbg oil. ht dijet
jj vxb BAT xij KA- xal i\ AK xq'os rfv KT iXda-
Oova [£pa] X6yov l^ft i] ov «{; xqos £s* ixaxtQa yap
ixaxiQas td p'- rj AT fipa xgbs [x^v] KT ») 8v ,«* s'
nrp&j |s. f"rt (Mja jj vjto KAT tfj vi^' ^ /M fipa
10 Jtpos [t»)v] ^ir iXdaaova Xoyov fyd rj 8v xd fits g'
wpog 6s, t) oh AT.XQbs TA iXdaaova f) xa fit\8'
xq'os Is- dvdxaXiv &ga tj xtQtpixQos xov xoXvydtvov
xq'os *V? SidfuxQov (lelfrva Xoyov e%tt ijxtQ ,stAs
xqos ,/S«5 8', Sxcq xov fitt;8' utlfavd iaxiv i) tpt-
i5 xXaaCovu xal Sixa oa'- xal x\ xeQt'ntxQos &qu xov
Ctyiovov xov iv tg5 xvxXe> xijs StapixQOv XQinXaoCmv• ioxi xal pclfav ij T oa- aaxs xal 6 xvxXog ixt p&X-
Xov xQixXaaiav laxl xal pi^av rj T oa'.
»j &qu xov xvxXov xtQlpcxQos *>7S StapixQov xqi-
toxXaoi'av taxi xal iXdaaovt (ilv y ip86fia pi'oei, pti-
tovt 6i?i
T oa' pci^ov.
l_L] Eutocius, / AB(C). 8 ,t^«3] Eutocius, e corr. B,
."*' ABC. L'\ Eutocius, e con-. B, f A, 3 B. 4 op] B'C,«5 AB. ir 'J
B', i/ a A(C); i i/ om. B. 6 ta"] B*, om.AB(C). 7 |s] C, e corr. B, «fs AB. 8 iwrt/pat] B»,txortpo ABC. ta jt'- ij AT) B', Wallis, oifioi AB, MJM-) C.
»pos rK Eutocius. Kr ^ bvl B«, JTumi'ia; (rK) . . (j*)» C,
xarayov A. ,o» s'J B'C, cos A. 10 Ar) WaUis, AT ABC;*pos jir Eutocius 18 ,sris| Eutocius, B', WaW«, ,s?5 s'
ABC. 14 ,K (pr.)] e corr. B, {it AC. IB oa) B, corr.
ex o'a' C, o'o' A. 16 i,~y6ivov\ C, qs xolvyuvov AB. 17i o«'] e corr. B, ovo'ia' AB(C). 18 > oa] e corr. B, d'lo'AC.t0 ilaaaori] scripsi, tlacuar ABC. (in'fovi—21 fiti'tuv] scripsi,
reproduction- of two pages of Arcliimcdes Opera Omnia(computation of *) (Edited by J. Heiberg, Vol. I, 1910)
DIMENSIO CIRCULI.
Ar-.FH< 30134; \ : 780 [u. Eutocius].
gecetur L VAH in duas partes aequales recta A 8; propter
eadem igitur erit AB : Br < 5924} \ : 780 [u. Eutocius]
siue < 1823 : 240; altera1
) enim alterius ,', est [u. Euto-
cius]; quare AT: T© < 1838£ : 240 [u. Eutocius]. porro
secetur i BAT in duas partes aequales recta KA; est igi-
tur AK : Kr< 1007 : 66 [u. Eutocius]; altera1) enim alte-
rius estJJ; itaque
Ar-.TK< 1009 J : 66 [u. Eutocius].
porro secetur L KAT in duas partes aequales recta AA\erit igitur
AA : AT< 2016 4, : 66 [u. Eutocius],
et AT:TA< 2017 \ : 66 [u. Eutocius]. et e contrario
<TA i Ar> 66 : 2017 \ [Pappus VII, 49 p. 6881. sed
VA latus est polygoni 96 latera habentis; quare) 5)peri-
metrus polygoni ad diametrum maiorem rationem habet
i, nam 6336 : 2017 J, quae maiora sunt quam triplo et }°
maiora quam 2017 \\ itaque etiam perimetrus polygoni in-
scripti 96 latera habentis major est quam triplo et " maior
diametro; quare etiam multo magis 9) circulus maior est
quam triplo et }° maior diametro.
ergo ambitus circuli triplo maior est diametro et excedit
spatio minore quam \, maiore autem quam ]°.
1) ExBpectaueris ixdziooi (ic. Spoj) yap ixatloov lixdziocc
yuo Ixaxtouv WaUis), Bed genus femininum minus adcuraterefertur ad auditiim uerbum littita, quasi sit A = 6924} J,
er- 780.
8) Ceri simile est, Archimedem ipsum haec addidisse. simi-
les omusionci durae inueniuntur p. 210, 4, 6; 248, 6, 8,
nee dubito eu transscriptori tribuere, sicut etiam p. 240, 8ti xoliiyuvoi' pro ij mp/jiftpo; roO xoXvymvov, p. 242, 17 6xirxlot pro ij xitt)UToot to* xixlov.
S) Qnippe quae maior sit perimetro polygoni (De sph. etcyl. I p. 10, 1).
(infuy it AC, maior B, autem quam decern septuagesi-munis add. 11'. In fine: Aoxfi^iovt xuxlov (inprjait A.
16 •
64 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS GREECE 65
The most important contributions which Archimedes
made to mathematics were in the domain of what wenow call the integral calculus,—theorems on areas of
plane figures and on volumes of solid bodies. In his
"Measurement of the Circle" he found an approxima-
tion of the circumference of the circle by the use of
inscribed and circumscribed regular polygons. Extend-
ing his approximation to polygons of 96 sides he found
(in our notation)
:
*<•284j
4_ < 3
2847£
201774
< t < 3
667|
4673±
<3
which is usually expressed by saying that x is about
equal to 3=. In Archimedes' book "On the Sphere and
Cylinder" we find the expression for the area of the
sphere (in the form that the area of a sphere is four times
that of a great circle) and for the volume of a sphere
(in the form that this volume is equal to 2/3 of the
volume of the circumscribed cylinder). Archimedes' ex-
pression for the area of a parabolic segment (4/3 the
area of the inscribed triangle with the same base as the
segment and its vertex at the point where the tangent
is parallel to the base) is found in his book on "The
'3.1409 < i < 3.1429. The arithmetic mean of upper andlower limit gives x = 3.1419. The correct value is 3.14159
Quadrature of the Parabola." In the book on "Spirals"
we find the "Spiral of Archimedes", with area compu-
tations; in "On Conoids and Spheroids" we find the
volumes of certain quadratic surfaces of revolution.
Archimedes' name is also connected with his theorem
on the loss of weight of bodies submerged in a liquid,
which can be found in his book "On Floating Bodies,"
a treatise on hydrostatics.
In all these works Archimedes combined a surprising
originality of thought with a mastery of computational
technique and rigor of demonstration. Typical of this
rigor is the "axiom of Archimedes" already quoted
and his consistent use of the exhaustion method to
prove the results of his integration. We have seen how
he actually found these results in a more heuristic way
(by "weighing" infinitesimals); but he subsequently
published them in accordance with the strictest re-
quirements of rigor. In his computational proficiency
Archimedes differed from most of the productive Greek
mathematicians. This gave his work, with all its typ-
ically Greek characteristics, a touch of the Oriental.
This touch is revealed in his "Cattle Problem," a very
complicated problem in indeterminate analysis which
may be interpreted as a problem leading to an equation
of the "Pell" type:
t1 - 4729494 u
2 = 1,
which is solved by very large numbers.
This is only one of many indications that the Platonic
tradition never entirely dominated Hellenistic mathe-
matics; Hellenistic astronomy points in the same direc-
tion.
66 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
9. With the third groat Hellenistic mathematician,
Apollonios of Perga (c. 260-c. 170) we are again entirely
within the Greek geometrical tradition. Apollonios,
who seems to have taught at Alexandria and at Per-
gamum, wrote a treatise of eight books on "Conies,"
of which seven have survived, three only in an Arabic
translation. It is a treatise on the ellipse, parabola,
and hyperbola, introduced as sections of a circular
cone, and penetrates as far as the discussion of the
evolutcs of a conic. We know these conies by the namesfound in Apollonios* they refer to certain area properties
of these curves, which are expressed in our notation bythe equations (homogeneous notation, p, d are lines
in Apollonios) y2 = px;y
3 =px ±^x3(the plus gives
the hyperbola, the minus the ellipse). Parabola here
means "application," ellipse "application with defici-
ency," hyperbola "application with excess." Apollonios
did not have our coordinate method because he had noalgebraic notation (probably rejecting it consciously
under influence of the school of Eudoxos). Many of his
results, however, can be transcribed immediately into
coordinate language—including his property of the evo-
lutes, which is identical with the Cartesian equation.1
This can also be said for other books by Apollonios,
of which parts have been preserved and which contain
"algebraic" geometry in geometrical and therefore ho-
'"My thesis, then, is that the essence of analytic geometry is
the study of loci by means of their equations, and that this wasknown to the Greeks and was the basis of their study in conic
sections." J. L. Coolidge, A History of Geometrical Methods {Ox-ford, 1940) p. 119. Sec, howeVer, our remarks on Descartes.
GREECE 67
mogeneous language. Here we find Apollonios ' tangency
problem which requires the construction of the circles
tangent to three given circles; the circles may be re-
placed by straight lines or points. In Apollonios we
meet for the first time in explicit form the requirement
that geometrical constructions be confined to compass
and ruler only, which therefore was not such a general
"Greek" requirement as is sometimes believed.
10. Mathematics, throughout its history and until
modern times, cannot be separated from astronomy.
The needs of irrigation and of agriculture in general
—
and to a certain extent also of navigation—accorded
to astronomy the first place in Oriental and in Hellen-
istic science, and its course determined to no small
extent that of mathematics. The computational and
often also the conceptual content of mathematics was
largely conditioned by astronomy, and the progress of
astronomy depended equally on the power of the mathe-
matical books available. The structure of the planetary
system is such that relatively simple mathematical
methods allow far reaching results, but are at the same
time complicated enough to stimulate improvement of
these methods and of the astronomical theories them-
selves. The Orient itself had made considerable ad-
vances in computational astronomy during the period
just preceeding the Hellenistic era, especially in Meso-
potamia during the late Assyrian and Persian periods.
Here observations consistently carried on over a long
period had allowed a remarkable understanding of many
ephemerides. The motion of the moon was one of the
most challenging of all astronomical problems to the
68 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
mathematician, in antiquity as well as in the Eighteenth
Century, and Babylonian ("Chaldean") astronomers
devoted much effort to its study. The meeting of Greek
and Babylonian science during the Seleucid period
brought great computational and theoretical advance-
ment, and where Babylonian science continued in the
ancient calendaric tradition, Greek science produced
some of its most significant theoretical triumphs.
The oldest known Greek contribution to theoretical
astronomy was the planetary theory of the same Eu-
doxos who inspired Euclid. It was an attempt to explain
the motion of the planets (around the earth) by assum-
ing the super-position of four rotating concentric spheres,
each with its own axis of rotation with the ends fixed
on the enclosing sphere. This was something new, and
typically Greek, an explanation rather than a chronicle
of celestial phenomena. Despite its crude form Eudoxos'
theory contained the central idea of all planetary theories
until the Seventeenth Century, which consisted in the ex-
planation of irregularities in the apparent orbits of moonand planets by the superposition of circular movements.
It still underlies the computational side of our modern
dynamic theories as soon as we introduce Fourier series.
Eudoxos was followed by Aristarchos of Samos (c. 280
B.C.), the " Copernicus of antiquity," credited by Archi-
medes with the hypothesis that the sun, and not the
earth, is the center of the planetary motion. This hy-
pothesis found few adherents in antiquity, though the
belief that the earth rotates about its axis had a wide
acceptance. The small success of the heliocentric hy-
pothesis was mainly due to the authority of Hipparchos,
often considered the great«st astronomer of antiquity.
^GREECE 0»
Hipparchos of Nicaca made observations between
161-126 B.C. Little of his work has come to us directly,
the main source of our knowledge of his achievements
coming through Ptolemy who lived three centuries later.
Much of the contents of Ptolemy's great work, the
"Almagest," may be ascribed to Hipparchos, especially
the use of eccentric circles and epicycles to explain the
motion of sun, moon, and planets, as well as the dis-
covery of the precession of the equinoxes. Hipparchos
is also credited with a method to determine latitude
and longitude by astronomical means, but antiquity
never was able to muster a scientific organization suf-
ficient to do any large scale mapping. (Scientists in
antiquity were very thinly scattered, both in locality
and in time.) Hipparchos' work was closely connected
with the achievements of Babylonian astronomy, which
reached great heights in this period; and we may see
in this work the most important scientific fruit of the
Greek—Oriental contact of the Hellenistic period.'
11. The third and last period of antique society is
that of the Roman domination. Syracuse fell to Rome
in 212, Carthage in 146, Greece in 146, Mesopotamia in
64, Egypt in 30 B.C. The whole Roman-dominated
Orient, including Greece, was reduced to the status of
a colony ruled by Roman administrators. This control
did not affect the economic structure of the Oriental
countries as long as the heavy taxes and other levies
were duly delivered. The Roman Empire naturally
'O. Nengebauer, Exact Science in Antiquity, Studies in Civiliza-
tion, Un. of Pennsylvania Bicentennial Conf. (Phila., 1942) pp.
22-31.
70 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
split into a Western part with extensive agriculture
fitted for wholesale slavery, and an Eastern part withintensive agriculture which never used slaves exceptfor domestic duties and for public works. Despite thegrowth of some cities and a commerce embracing thewhole of the known Western world, the entire economicstructure, of the Roman Empire remained based onagriculture. The spread of a slave economy in such asociety was fatal to all original scientific work. Slaveowners as a class are seldom interested in technical
discoveries, partly because slaves can do all the workcheaply, and partly because they fear to give any tool
into the hands of slaves which may sharpen their in-
telligence. Many members of the ruling class dabbledin the arts and sciences, but this very dabbling pro-
moted mediocrity rather than productive thinking.
When with the decline of the slave market Romaneconomy declined, there were few men to cultivate eventhe mediocre science of the past centuries.
As long as the Roman Empire showed some stability,
Eastern science continued to flourish as a curious blendof Hellenistic and Oriental elements. Though originality
and stimulation gradually disappeared, the pax Romano.lasting for many centuries allowed undisturbed specu-lation along traditional lines. Coexistent with the paxRomana was for some centuries the pax Sinensis; theEurasian continent in all its history never knew sucha period of uninterrupted peace as under the Antoninsin Rome and the Han in China. This made the diffusion
of knowledge over the continent from Rome and Athensto Mesopotamia, China, and India easier than everbefore. Hellenistic science continued to flow into China
GREECE 71
and India and was influenced in its turn by the science
of those countries. Glimpses of Babylonian astronomy
and Greek mathematics came to Italy, Spain, and Gaul,
—an example is the spread of the sexagesimal division
of angle and hour over the Roman Empire. There exists
a theory of E. Woepcke which traces the spread of the
so-called Hindu-Arabic numerals over Europe to Neo-
Pythagorean influences in the later Roman Empire.
This may be true, but if the spread of these numerals
goes back that far, then it is more likely due to the
influences of trade rather than of philosophy.
Alexandria remained the center of antique mathe-
matics. Original work continued, though compilation
and commentarization became more and more the prom-
inent form of science. Many results of the ancient
mathematicians and astronomers have been transmitted
to us through the works of these compilers; and it is
sometimes quite difficult to find out what they trans-
cribed and what they discovered themselves. In trying
to understand the gradual decline of Greek mathematics
we must also take its technical side into account: the
clumsy geometrical mode of expression with the con-
sistent rejection of algebraic notation, which made any
advance beyond the conic sections almost impossible.
Algebra and computation were left to the despised Ori-
entals, whose lore was covered by a veneer of Greek
civilization. It is wrong, however, to believe that Alex-
andrian mathematics was purely "Greek" in the tradi-
tional Euclidean-Platonic sense; computational arith-
metics and algebra of an Egyptian-Babylonian type
was cultivated side by side with abstract geometri-
cal demonstrations. We have only to think of Ptolemy,
72 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Heron, and Diophantos to become convinced of this
fact. The only tie between the many races and schoolswas the common use of Greek.
12. One of the earliest Alexandrian mathematiciansof the Roman, period was Nicomachos of Gerasa (A.D.100) whose "Arithmetic Introduction" is the most com-plete exposition extant of Pythagorean arithmetic. It
deals in great part with the same subjects as the arith-metical books of Euclid's "Elements," but where Euclidrepresents numbers by straight lines, Nicomachos usesarithmetical notation with ordinary language when un-determined numbers are expressed. His treatment ofpolygonal numbers and pyramidal numbers was of in-
fluence on medieval arithmetic, especially through Boe-tius.
One of the greatest documents of this second Alex-andrian period was Ptolemy's "Great Collection," bet-ter known under the Arabicized title of "Almagest"(c. 150 A.D.). The "Almagest" was an astronomicalopus of supreme mastership and originality, even if
many of the ideas may have come from Hipparchos orKidinnu and other Babylonian astronomers. It alsocontained a trigonometry, with a table of chords be-longing to different angles, equivalent to a sine table ofangles ranging from 0° to 90°, ascending by halves of anangle. Ptolemy found for the chord of 1° the value
(1, 2, 50), = ^ + ^ -(- H = .017268; the correct
value is .017453; for* the value (3, 8, 30) = 3.14166.We find in the "Almagest" the formula for the sine andcosine of the sum and difference of two angles, together
GREECE 73
with a beginning of spherical trigonometry. The theo-
rems were expressed in geometrical form— our present
trigonometrical notation only dates from Euler in the
Eighteenth Century. We also meet in this book "Ptole-
my's theorem" for a quadrilateral inscribed in a circle.
In Ptolemy's "Planisphaerium" we find a discussion of
stereographic projection and of latitude and longitude
in a sphere, which are ancient examples of coordinates.
Somewhat older than Ptolemy was Menelaos (c. 100
A.D.), whose "Sphaerica" contained a geometry of the
sphere, with a discussion of spherical triangles, a subject
which is missing in Euclid. Here we find "Menelaos'
theorem" for the triangle in its extension to the sphere.
Where Ptolemy's astronomy contained a good deal of
computational work in sexagesimal fractions, Menelaos'
treatise was geometrical in the pure Euclidean tradition.
To the period of Menelaos may also belong Heron,
at any rate we know that he described accurately a
lunar eclipse of 62 A.D 1. Heron was an encyclopedic
writer who wrote on geometrical, computational, and
mechanical subjects; they show a curious blend of the
Greek and Oriental. In his "Metrica" he derived the
" Hcronic" formula for the area of a triangle A =
\Zs(.s — a)(s — b)(s — c) in purely geometrical form;
the proposition itself has been ascribed to Archimedes.
In the same "Metrica" we find typical Egyptian unit
fractions, as in the approximation of \/63 by 7 + ^ +
I j_ I _|- — Heron's formula for the volume of a frus-
4 8 16
O. Ncugebauer. Ober eine Melhode zur Dislanzbeglimmung
Alexandria—Rom bei Heron. Hist. fil. Medd. Danske Vid. Sels.
26 (1938) No. 2, 28 pp.
74 A CONCISE HISTOHY OF MATHEMATICS
turn ofa square pyramid can readily be reduced to theone found in the ancient Moscow Papyrus. His meas-urement of the volume of the five regular polyhedra,on the contrary, was again in the spirit of Euclid.
13. The Oriental touch is even stronger in the " Arith-metica" of Diophantos (c. 250 A.D.). Only six of theoriginal books survive; their total number is a matterof conjecture. Their skillful treatment of indeterminateequations shows that the ancient algebra of Babylonor perhaps India not only survived under the veneer ofGreek civilization but also was improved by a few activemen. How and when it was done is not known, just aswe do not know who Diophantos was—he may havebeen a Hellenized Babylonian. His book is one of themost fascinating treatises preserved from Greek-Romanantiquity.
Diophantos' collection of problems is of wide varia-tion and their solution is often highly ingenious. "Dio-phantine analysis" consists in finding answers to suchindeterminate equations as Ax1 + Bx + C = if,
Ax3 + Bx3 + Cx + D = ya, or sets of these equations.
Typical of Diophantos is that he was only interested in
positive rational solutions; he called irrational solutions"impossible" and was careful to select his coefficients
so as to get the positive rational solution he was lookingfor. Among the equations we find x
a - 26y3 =
1,
x' - 3(V = 1, now known as "Pell" equations. Dio-phantos also has several propositions in the theory ofnumbers, such as the theorem (III, 19) that if each oftwo integers is the sura of two squares their product canbe resolved in two ways into two squares. There are
GREECE 75
theorems about the division of a number into the sum
of three and four squares.
In Diophantos we find the first systematic use of
algebraic symbols. He has a special sign for the un-
known, for the minus, for reciprocals. The signs are
still of the nature of abbreviations rather than alge-
braic symbols in our sense (they form the so-called
"rhetoric" algebra); for each power of the unknown
there exists a special symbol1
. There is no doubt that
we have here not only, as in Babylon, arithmetical
questions of a definite algebraic nature, but also a
well developed algebraic notation which was greatly
conducive to the solution of problems of greater com-
plication than were ever taken up before.
14. The last of the great Alexandrian mathematical
treatises was written by Pappos (end Third Century),
His "Collection" ("Synagoge") was a kind of hand-
book to the study of Greek geometry with historical
annotations, improvements, and alterations of existing
theorems and demonstrations. It was to be read with
the original works rather than independently. Manyresults of ancient authors arc known only in the form in
which Pappos preserved them. Examples are the prob-
lems dealing with the quadrature of the circle, the
duplication of the cube, and the trisection of the angle.
'Papyrus 620 of the University of Michigan, acquired in 1921»
contains some problems in Greek algebra dating to a period before
Diophantos, perhaps early second century A.D. Some symbols
found in Diophantos appear in this manuscript. See F. E. Robbing,
Classical Philology 24 (1929) pp. 321-329; K. Vogel, ib. 25 (1930)
pp. 373-375.
76 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS GREECE 77
Interesting is his chapter on isoperimetric figures inwhich we find the circle has larger area than any regularpolygon of equal perimeter. Here is also the remarkthat the cells in the honeycomb satisfy certain maxi-mum-minimum properties.' Archimedes' semi-regularsolids are also known through Pappos. Like Diophantos'Arithmetical the "Collection" is a challenging book
whose problems inspired much further research in laterdays.
The Alexandrian school gradually died with the de-cline of antique society. It remained, as a whole, abulwark of paganism against the progress of Christian-ity, and several of its mathematicians have also left
J^on thl
hi8t0'y °f ancient Ph'»osophy. Proclos
J? „5)
'whose 'Commentary on the First Book of
Euclid" is one of our main sources of the history of Greekmathematics, headed a Neoplatonist school in Athens.Another representative of this school, in Alexandriawas Hypatia, who wrote commentaries on the classicalmathematicians. She was murdered in 415 by the fol-lowers of St. Cyril, a fate which inspired a novel byCharles Kmgsley2
. These philosophical schools withtheir commentators had their ups and downs for cen-turies. The Academy in Athens was discontinued aspagan by the Emperor Justinian (529), but by this
time there were again schools in such places as Con-stantinople JundishapQr. Many old codices survived inConstantinople, whilecommentatorscontinuedtoperpet-
'A full discussion of this problem in D'Arcy W. Thompson,On (.mirth <iml form (Cum bridge, 2nd cd., 1942)'See also Voltaire. IHctionnavre Philcsoph^ue, art. Hypatie
(Oeuvres, ed., 1819, tome 36, p. 458).
uate the memory of Greek science and philosophy in the
Greek language. In630 Alexandriawas taken by the Arabs,
who replaced the upper layer of Greek civilization in
Egypt by an upper layer of Arabic. There is no reason
to believe that the Arabs destroyed the famous Alex-
andrian Library, since it is doubtful whether this library
still existed at that time. As a matter of fact, the Arabic
conquests did not materially change the character of
the mathematical studies in Egypt. There may have
been a retrogression, but when we hear of Egyptian
mathematics again it is still following the ancient
Greek-Oriental tradition (e.g. Alhazen).
15. We end this chapter with some remarks on Greek
arithmetic and logistics. Greek mathematicians made
a difference between " arithmetica" or science of num-
bers ("arithmoi") and "logistics" or practical compu-
tation. The term "arithmos" expressed only a natural
number, a "quantity composed of units" (Euclid VII,
Def. 2, this also meant that "one" was not considered
a number). Our conception of real number was un-
known. A line segment, therefore, had not always a
length. Geometrical reasoning replaced our work with
real numbers. When Euclid wanted to express that the
area of a triangle is equal to half base times altitude,
he had to state that it is half the area of a parallelo-
gram of the same base and lying between the same
parallels (Euclid I, 41). Pythagoras' theorem was a
relation between the areas of three squares and not
between the lengths of three sides. This conception
must be considered as a deliberate act brought about
by the victory of Platonic idealism among those sec-
7
78 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
tions of the Greek ruling class interested in mathe-matics, since the contemporary Oriental conceptionsconcerning the relation of algebra and geometry didnot admit any restriction of the number concept.There is every reason to believe that, for the. Baby-lonians, Pythagoras' theorem was a numerical relation
between the lengths of sides, and it was this type of
mathematics with- which the Ionian mathematicianshad become acquainted.
Ordinary computational mathematics known as "lo-gistics" remained very much alive during all periodsof Greek history. Euclid rejected it, but Archimedesand Heron used it with ease and without scruples.Actually it was based on a system of numeration whichchanged with the times. The early Greek method ofnumeration was based on an additive decimal principlelike that of the Egyptians and the Romans. In Alex-andrian times, perhaps earlier, a method of writingnumbers appeared which was used for fifteen centuries,not only by scientists but also by merchants and ad-ministrators. It used the successive symbols of theGreek alphabet to express, first our symbols 1,2, ,
9, then the tens from 10 to 90, and finally the hundredsfrom 100 to 900 (<v = 1, = 2, etc.) Three extra archaicletters were added to the 24 letters of the Greek alpha-bet in order to obtain the necessary 27 symbols. Withthe aid of this system every number less than 1000 couldbe written with at most three symbols, e.g. 14 as 1 5,since i = 10, 5 = 4; numbers larger than 1000 could beexpressed by a simple extension of the system. It is
used in the existing manuscripts of Archimedes, Heron,
GHEECE 79
and all the other classical authors. There is archaeo-
logical proof that it was taught in the schools.
This was a decimal non-position system, both t5 and
5i could only mean 14. This lack of place value and the
use of no less than 27 symbols have occasionally been
laken as a proof of the inferiority of the system. The
case with which the ancient mathematicians used it,
its acceptance by Greek merchants even in rather com-
plicated transactions, its long persistence—in the East
Roman Empire until its very end in 1453—seem to
[joint to certain advantages. Some practice with the
system can indeed convince us that it is possible to
perform the four elementary operations easily enough
once the meaning of the symbols is mastered. Fractional
calculus with a proper notation is also simple ; but the
Greeks were inconsistent because of their lack of a
uniform system. They used Egyptian unit fractions,
Babylonian sexagesimal fractions, and also fractions in
a notation reminiscent of ours. Decimal fractions were
never introduced, but this great improvement appears
only late in the European Renaissance after the com-
putational apparatus had extended far beyond any-
thing ever used in antiquity; even then decimal frac-
tions were not adopted in many schoolbooks until the
Eighteenth and Nineteenth Century.
It has been argued that this alphabetical system has
been detrimental to the growth of Greek algebra, since
the use of letters for definite numbers prevented their
use for denoting numbers in general, as we do in our
algebra. Such a formal explanation of the absence of a
Greek algebra before Diophantos must be rejected, even
80 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
if we accept the great value of an appropriate notation.If the classical authors had been interested in algebrathey would have created the appropriate symbolism,with which Diophantos actually made a beginning. Theproblem of Greek algebra can be elucidated only byfurther study of the connections between Greek mathe-maticians and Babylonian algebra in the framework ofthe entire relationship of Greece and the Orient.
Literature.
The Greek classical authors are available in excellenttexts with the principal texts also available in Englishtranslations. The best introduction is offered in thefollowing books:
T. L. Heath, A History of Greek Mathematics (2 vols.,
Cambridge, 1921).
T. L. Heath, A Manual of Greek Mathematics (Oxford1931).
T. L. Heath, The Thirteen Books of Euclid's Elements(3 vols., Cambridge, 1908).
See also:
P. Ver Eecke, Oeuvres completes d'ArchimMe (Bruxelles1921).
P. Ver Eecke, Pappus a"Alexandria La Collection malhb-malique. (Paris, Bruges, 1933).
P. Ver Eecke, Proclus de Lycie. Us Commentates sur le
Premier Livre des Elements d'Euclide (Bruges, 1948)
.
GREECE 81
G. Loria, Le scienze esatte neW antica Grecia (Milan,
2nd ed, 1914).
G. J. Allman, Greek Geometry from ThaUs to Euclid
(Dublin, 1889).
J. Gow, A Short History of Greek Mathematics (Cam-
bridge, 1844. Repi-inted 1951).
K. Reidemeister, Die Arithmetik der Griechen, Ham-
burg Math. Seminar Einzelschriften 26 (1939).
Comparative Greek, Latin, and English texts in:
I. Thomas, Selections Illustrating the History of Greek
Mathematics (Cambridge, Mass., London, 1939).
Further text criticism in:
P. Tannery, Pour I'histoire de la science hellene (2nd.ed.
Paris, 1930).
P. Tannery, MSmoires scientifiques (vols. 1-4).
H. Vogt, Die Entdeckungsgeschichte des Irrationcden
nach Plato und anderen Quellen des 4"" Johr-
hunderts, Bibliotheca mathematica (3) 10 (1909-
10) pp. 97-105.
E. Sachs, Diefunf Platonischen Korper (Berlin, 1917).
E. Frank, Plato und die sogenannien Pythagoreer (Halle,
1923).
S. Luria, Die Infinitesimaltheorie der antiken Atomisten,
Quellen und Studien 2 (1932) pp. 106-185.
A good and critical survey of the different hypotheses
concerning Greek mathematics in
:
82 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
E. Dijksterhuis, De elementen van Euclides (2 vols.,
Groningen, 1930, in the Dutch language).
On Zeno's paradoxes see, apart from Van der Waer-den, 1. c. p. 50:
F. Cajori, The History of Zeno's Arguments on Motion,Am. Math. Monthly 22 (1915), 8 articles (See alsoIsis 3).
On the relation of Greek to Oriental astronomy:
0. Neugebauer, The History ofAncient Astronomy. Prob-lems and Methods, Journ. of Near Eastern Studies 4(1945) pp. 1-38.
See further:
M. R. Cohen-I. E. Drabkin, A Source Book in CheekScience (London, 1948).
T. L. Heath, Mathematics in Aristotle (Oxford, 1949).B. L. Van der Waerden, Ontwakende Wetenschap (Gro-
ningen, 1950).
This book, in Dutch, deals with Egyptian, Babylonian, and Greekmathematics.
CHAPTER IV
The Orient after the Decline of Greek Society
1. The ancient civilization of the Near East never
disappeared despite all Hellenistic influence. Both Ori-
ental and Greek influences are clearly revealed in the
science of Alexandria; Constantinople and India were
also important meeting grounds of East and West. In
395 Theodosios I founded the Byzantine Empire; its
capital Constantinople was Greek, but it was the center
of administration of vast territories where the Greeks
were only a section of the urban population. For a
thousand years this empire fought against the forces
from the East, North, and West, serving at the same
time as a guardian of Greek culture and as a bridge
between the Orient and the Occident. Mesopotamia
became independent of the Romans and Greeks as
early as the second century A.D., first under the Par-
thian kings, later (266) under the purely Persian dy-
nasty of the Sassanians. The Indus region had for some
centuries several Greek dynasties, which disappeared by
the first century A.D.; but the native Indian kingdoms
which followed kept up cultural relations with Persia
and the West.
The political hegemony of the Greeks over the Near
East disappeared almost entirely with the sudden
growth of Islam. After 622, the year of the Hegira,
the Arabs conquered large sections of Western Asia in
an amazing sweep and before the end of the seventh
century had occupied parts of the West. Roman empire
83
84 A C0NCI8E HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
as far as Sicily, North Africa, and Spain. Whereverthey went they tried to replace the Greek-Romancivilization by that of the Islam. The official language
became Arabic, instead of Greek or Latin; but the fact
that a new language was used for the scientific docu-ments tends to obscure the truth that under Arabic rule
a considerable continuity of culture remained. Theancient native civilizations had even a better chance
to survive under this rule than under the alien rule of
the Greeks. Persia, for instance, remained very muchthe ancient country of the Sassanians, despite the
Arabic administration. However, the contest betweenthe different traditions continued, only now in a newform. Throughout the whole period of Islamic rule there
existed a definite Greek tradition holding its ownagainst the different native cultures.
2. We have seen that the most glorious mathematicalresults of this competition and blending of Oriental andGreek culture during the heydays of the Roman Em-pire appeared in Egypt. With the decline of the RomanEmpire the center of mathematical research began to
shift to India and later back to Mesopotamia. The first
well-preserved Indian contributions to the exact sciences
are the "Siddhantas," of which one, the "Surya," maybe extant in a form resembling the original one (c. 300-
400 A.D.). These books deal mainly with astronomyand operate with epicycles and sexagesimal fractions.
These facts suggest influence of Greek astronomy, per-
haps transmitted in a period antedating the "Alma-gest"; they also may indicate direct contact with Baby-lonian astronomy. In addition the "Siddhantas" show
THE ORIENT 85
many native Indian characteristics. The "Surya Sidd-
hanta" has tables of sines (jya) instead of chords.
The results of the "Siddhantas" were systematically
explained and extended by schools of Indian mathe-
maticians, mainly centered in Ujjain (Central India)
and Mysore (S. India). From the Fifth Century A.D.
on, names and books of individual Indian mathema-
ticians have been preserved ; some books are even avail-
able in English translations.
The best known of these mathematicians are Aryab-
hata (called "the first," c. 500) and Brahmagupta
(c. 625). The whole question of their indebtedness to
Greece, Babylon, and China is a subject of much con-
jecture; but they show at the same time considerable
originality. Characteristic of their work are the arith-
metical-algebraic parts, which bear in their love for
indeterminate equations some kinship to Diophantos.
These writers were followed in the next centuries by
others working in the same general field; their works
were partly astronomical, partly arithmetic-algebraical,
and had excursions into mensuration and trigonometry.
Aryabhata I had for it the value 3.1416. A favorite
subject was the finding of rational triangles and quadri-
laterals, in which Mahavira of the Mysore school (c.
850) was particularly prolific. Around 1150 we find mUjjain, where Brahmagupta had worked, another excel-
lent mathematician, Bhaskara. The first general solu-
tion of indeterminate equations of the first degree
ax + by = c(a.,b,e integers) is found in Brahmagupta.
It is therefore, strictly speaking, incorrect to call linear
indeterminate equations Diophantine equations. Where
Diophantos still accepted fractional solutions, the Hin-
86 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
dus were only satisfied with integer solutions. They also
advanced beyond Diophantos in admitting negativeroots of equations, though this may again have been anolder practice suggested by Babylonian astronomy.Bhaskara, for instance, solved x
2 — 45z = 250 byx = 50 and x = —5; he indulged in some scepticism asto the validity of the negative root. His "Lilavati"was for many centuries a standard work on arithmeticand mensuration in the East; the emperor Akbar hadit translated into Persian (1587). In 1832 an edition waspublished in Calcutta'.
3. The best known achievement of Hindu mathe-matics is our present decimal position system. The deci-
mal system is very ancient, and so is the position
system;but their combination seems to have originated
in India, where in the course of time it was graduallyimposed upon older non-position systems. Its first
known occurrence is on a plate of the year 595 A.D.,where the date 346 is written in decimal place valuenotation. The Hindus long before this epigraphicrecord had a system of expressing large numbers bymeans of words arranged according to a place value
Brahmagupta states somewhere in his book that some of hisproblems were proposed "simply for pleasure". This confirmsthat mathematics in the Orient had long since evolved from its
purely utilitarian function. One hundred and fifty years laterAlcuin, in the West, wrote his "Problems for the Quickening ofthe Mind of the Young", expressing a similar non-utilitarianpurpose. Mathematics in the form of the intellectual puzzlehas often contributed essentially to the progress of science byopening new fields. Some puzzles still await their integrationinto the main body of mathematics.
THE ORIENT 87
method. There are early texts in which the word
"Sunya," meaning zero, is explicitly used1
. The so-
called Bakshali manuscript, consisting of seventy leaves
of birch bark of uncertain origin and date (estimates
range from the Third to the Twelfth Century A.D.),
and with traditional Hindu material on indeterminate
and quadratic equations as well as approximations, has
a dot to express zero. The oldest epigraphic record with
a sign for zero dates from the Ninth Century. This is
all much later than the occurrence of a sign for zero
in Babylonian texts.
The decimal place value system slowly penetrated
along the caravan roads into many parts of the Near
East, taking its place beside other systems. Penetration
into Persia, perhaps also Egypt, may very well have
happened in the Sassanian period (224-641), when the
contact between Persia, Egypt, and India Was close.
In this period the memory of the ancient Babylonian
place value system may still have been alive in Meso-
potamia. The oldest definite reference to the Hindu
place value system outside of India is found in a work
of 662 written by Severus Sebokht, a Syrian bishop.
With Al-Fazaii's translation of the "Siddhantas" into
Arabic (c. 773) the Islamic scientific world began to be
acquainted with the so-called Hindu system. This sys-
tem began to be more widely used in the Arabic world
and beyond, though the Greek system of numeration
also remained in use as well as other native systems.
This may be compared to the use of the concept of the
"void" (kenos) in Aristotle's "Physica" IV. 8.215b . See C. B.
Boyer. Zero: the symbol, the concept, the number. Nat. Mathem.
Magazine 18 (1944) pp. 323-330.
88 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Social factors may have played a role—the Orientaltradition favoring the decimal place value methodagainst the method of the Greeks. The symbols usedto express the place value numerals show wide variationsbut there are two main types: the Hindu symbols usedby the Eastern Arabs; and the so-called "gobar" (orghubar) numerals used in Spain among the WesternArabs. The first symbols are still used in the Arab worldbut our present numeral system seems to be derivedfrom the "gobar" system. There exists an already men-tioned theory of Woepcke, according to which the"gobar" numerals were in use in Spain when the Arabsarrived, having reached the West through the Neo-Pythagoreans of Alexandria as early as 450 A.D. 1
4. Mesopotamia, which under the Hellenistic andRoman rules had become an outpost of the Roman em-pire, reconquered its central position along the traderoutes under the Sassanians, who reigned as native Per-sian kings over Persia in the tradition of Cyrus andXerxes. Little is known about this period in Persianhistory, especially about its science, but the legendaryhistory—the Thousand and One Nights, Omar Khay-yam, Firdawsi—confirms the meagre historical recordthat the Sassanian period was an era of cultural splen-dor. Situated between Constantinople, Alexandria,
•Comp. S. Gandz, The Origin of the Ghubar Numerals, Isis 16( 1931 ) pp. 393-424. There exists also a theory of N. Bubnov, whichholds that the gobar forms were derived from ancient Roman-Greek symbols used on the abacus. See also the footnote in 1'.
Cajori, History of Mathematics (New York, 1938) p. 90, as wellas Smith-Karpinski, (quoted p. 97) p. 71.
THE ORIENT
India, and China, Sassanian Persia was a country where
many cultures met. Babylon had disappeared but was
replaced by Seleucia-Ktesiphon, which again made place
for Bagdad after the Arabic conquest of 641. This
conquest left much of ancient Persia unaffected, though
Arabic replaced Pehlevi as the official language. Even
Islam was only accepted in a modified form (Shlcisra)
;
Christians, Jews, and Zoroastrians continued to con-
tribute to the cultural life of the Bagdad caliphate.
The mathematics of the Islamic period shows the
same blend of influences with which we have become
familiar in Alexandria and in India1
. The Abbasid
caliphs, notably Al-Mansur (754-775), Harun al-Rashid
(786-809), and Al-Ma'-mun (813-833) promoted astron-
omy and mathematics, Al-Ma'-mun even organizing
at Bagdad a "House of Wisdom" with a library and an
observatory. Islamic activities in the exact sciences,
which began with Al-Fazari's translation of the "Sidd-
hantas," reached its first height with a native from
Khiva, Muhammad ibn Musa al-Khwarizmi, who
flourished about 825. Muhammad wrote several books
on mathematics and astronomy. His arithmetic ex-
plained the Hindu system of numeration. Although
lost in the original Arabic, a Latin translation of the
Twelfth Century is extant. This book was one of the
means by which Western Europe became acquainted
with the decimal position. The title of the translation,
'All accounts of"Arabic"mathematics must remain tedious
repetition of second hand and third hand information as long as
only some works such as Al-Khwarizmi and Khayyam are avail-
able in translation. A history of "Arabic" mathematics by a
competent "Arabic" scholar does not exist. Suter's book was a
mere beginning.
r
Courtesy of The Metropolitan Munum of Art
TOMB OF OMAR KHAYYAM IN MI.SIIAI'UU
THE ORIENT 91
"Algorithmi de numero Indorum," added the term
"algorithmus"—a latinization of the author's name
—
to our mathematical language. Something similar hap-
pened to Muhammad's algebra, which had the title
" Hisab al-jabr wal-muqabala" (lit. "science of reduction
and cancellation", probably meaning "science of equa-
tions")- This algebra, of which the Arabic text is extant,
also became known in the West through Latin trans-
lations, and they made the word "al-jabr" synonymous
with the whole science of "algebra", which, indeed,
until the middle of the Nineteenth Century was nothing
but the science of equations.
This "algebra" contains a discussion of linear and
quadratic equations, but without any algebraic formal-
ism. Even the Diophantine "rhetoric" symbolism was
absent. Among these equations are the three types
characterized by x2 + l(te = 39, x
2 + 21 = lOx, 3a: +4 = x
2, which had to be separately treated as long as
positive coefficients were the only ones which were
admitted. These three types reappear frequently in
later texts—" thus the equation x' + lOz = 39 runs like
a thread of gold through the algebras for several cen-
turies," writes Professor L. C. Karpinski. Much of the
reasoning is geometric. Muhammad's astronomical and
trigonometrical tables (with sines and tangents) also
belong to the Arabic works which later were translated
into Latin. His geometry is a simple catalogue of men-
suration rules; it is of some importance because it can
be directly traced to a Jewish text of 150 A.D. It shows
a definite lack of sympathy with the Euclidean tradi-
tion. Al-Khwarizml's astronomy was an abstract of the
"Siddhantas," and therefore may show some indirect
92 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Greek influence by way of a Sanskrit text. The works of
Al-Khwarizml as a whole seem to show Oriental rather
than Greek influence1
, and this may have been de-
liberate.
Al-Khwarizml's work plays an important role in the
history of mathematics, for it is one of the main sources
through which Indian numerals and Arabic algebra
came to Western Europe. Algebra, until the middle of
the Nineteenth Century, revealed its Oriental origin
by its lack of an axiomatic foundation, in this respect
sharply contrasting with euclidean geometry. Thepresent day school algebra and geometry still preserve
these tokens of their different origin.
5. The Greek tradition was cultivated by a school of
Arabic scholars who faithfully translated the Greekclassics into Arabic—Apollonius, Archimedes, Euclid,
Ptolemy, and others. The general acceptance of the
name "Almagest" for Ptolemy's "Great Collection"
shows the influence of the Arabic translations upon the
West. This copying and translating has preserved manya Greek classic which otherwise would have been lost.
There was a natural tendency to stress the computa-tional and practical side of Greek mathematics at the
cost of its theoretical side. Arabic astronomy was par-
ticularly interested in trigonometry—the word "sinus"
is a Latin translation of the Arabic spelling of the
Sanscrit jyS. The sines correspond to half the chord
of the double arc (Ptolemy used the whole chord), andwere conceived as lines, not as numbers. We find a
•S. Gandz, The Sources of AUKhwdrizmVs Algebra, Osiris 1
(1936) pp. 263-277.
THE ORIENT Mo
good deal of trigonometry in the works of Al-Battfini
(Albategnius, bef. 858-929), one of the great Arabic
astronomers who had a table of cotangents for every
degree ("umbra extensa") as well as the cosine rule
for the spherical triangle.
This work by Al-Battani shows us that Arabic
writers not only copied but also contributed new results
through their mastery of both Greek and Oriental
methods. Abul-1-Wafa' (940-997/8) derived the sine
theorem of spherical trigonometry, computed sine
tables for intervals of 15' of which values were correct
in eight decimal places, introduced the equivalents of
secant and cosecant, and played with geometrical con-
structions using a compass of one fixed opening. He also
continued the Greek study of cubic and biquadratic
equations. Al-Karkhl (beginning of the Eleventh Cen-
tury), who wrote an elaborate algebra following Dio-
phantos, had interesting material on surds, such as the
formulas VS + VlS = V50, Vte - V2 = VT&. He
showed a definite tendency in favor of the Greeks; his
"neglect of Hindu mathematics was such that it must
have been systematic'".
6. We need not follow the many political and ethno-
logical changes in the world of Islam. They brought
ups and downs in the cultivation of astronomy and
mathematics; certain centers disappeared, others flour-
ished for a while; but the general character of the
Islamic type of science remained virtually unchanged.
We shall mention only a few highlights.
About 1000 B.C. new rulers appeared in Northern
>G. Sarton, Introduction to the History of Science I, p. 719.
8
94 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
Persia, the Saljuq (Selchuk) Turks, whose empire flour-
ished around the irrigation center of Merv. Here livedOmar Khayyam (c. 1038/48-1123/24), known in theWest as the author of the "Rubaiyat" (in the Fitz-
gerald translation, 1859) ; he was an astrononer and aphilosopher:
"Ah, but my Computations, People say,
Have squared the Year to human Compass, eh?If so, by striking from the CalendarUnborn tomorrow, and dead Yesterday". (LIX)
Here Omar may have referred to his reform of theold Persian calendar, which instituted an error of oneday in 5000 years (1540 or 3770 years according todifferent interpretations), whereas our present Greg-orian calendar has an error of one day in 3330 years.His reform was introduced in 1079 but was later re-
placed by the Muslim lunar calendar. Omar wrote an"Algebra," which represented a considerable achieve-ment, since it contained a systematic investigation ofcubic equations. Using a method occasionally used bythe Greeks, he determined the roots of these equationsas intersection of two conic sections. He had no numer-ical solutions and discriminated—also in Greek style-between "geometrical" and "arithmetical" solutions,
the latter existing only if the roots are positive rational.
This approach was therefore entirely different from thatof the Sixteenth Century Bolognese mathematicians,who used purely algebraical methods.
After the sack of Bagdad in 1256 by the Mongols anew center of learning sprang up near the same placeat the observatory of Maragha, built by the Mongolruler Hulagu for Naslr al-dln (Nasir-eddin, 1201-1274).
THE ORIENT 95
Here again arose an institute where the whole of Ori-
ental science could be pooled and matched with the
Greek. Nasir separated trigonometry as a special
science from astrononrv ; his attempts to "prove"
Euclid's parallel axiom show that he appreciated the
theoretical approach of the Greeks. Nasir's influence
was widely felt later in Renaissance Europe; as late
as 1651 and 1663 John Wallis used Nasir's work on
the Euclidean postulate.
An important figure in Egypt was Ibn Al-Haitham
(Alhazen, c. 965-1039), the greatest Muslim physicist,
whose "Optics" had a great influence on the West. He
solved the "problem of Alhazen," in which we are asked
to draw from two points on the plane of a circle lines
meeting at the point of the circumference and making
equal angles with the normal at that point. This prob-
lem leads to a biquadratic equation and was solved in
the Greek way by a hyperbola meeting a circle. Alhazen
also used the exhaustion method to compute the vol-
umes of figures obtained by revolving a parabola about
any diameter or ordinate. One hundred years before
Alhazen there lived in Egypt the algebrist Abu Kamil,
who followed and extended the work of Al-KhwarizmT.
He influenced not only Al-Karkhl, but also Leonardo
of Pisa.
Another center of learning existed in Spain. One of
the important astronomers at Cardoba was Al-Zarqali,
(Arzachel, c. 1029-c. 1087), the best observer of his
time and the editor of the so-called Tolcdan planetary
tables. The trigonometrical tables of this work, which
was translated into Latin, had some influence on the
development of trigonometry in the Renaissance.
96 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
In China we must mention Tsu Ch'ung Chi (430-501)who found for *• the value 355/113; the mathema-ticians and astrononers of the T'ang dynasty (610-907)who compiled the "Ten Classics"; and Ch'in Chiu-Shao (Thirteenth Century) who gave numerical solu-tions of equations of higher degree. Ch'in's solution ofthe equation
:
x* - 763200 xa + 40642560000 =
followed a method similar to that which we now knowas Horner's.
Some of these achievements are not without interest,
but they show no essential progress beyond the limitsset by the Greeks and the Babylonians. The same holdsfor Japanese mathematics, about which informationbegins to reach us from the Twelfth Century on. Allthis work in mathematics remained at best semi-stag-nating. We lose interest in it when in the SixteenthCentury a new type of mathematics began to nourishin the West.'
Literature.
(See also at the end of Chapter II.)
H. Suter, Die Mathematiker und Astronomer der Araber^undihre Werke (Leipzig, 1900, Nachtrage, 1902).
'In the Sixteenth and Seventeenth Centuries Chinese andJapanese mathematics begins to become more interesting. Thiswas partly due to contact with Europe. Western mathematicsand astronomy were introduced into China by Father MatteoRicci, who stayed in Peking from 1583 until his death in 1610.See H. Bosnians, L'oeuvre scienliftque de Mathieu Ricci, S.J.,Revue des Questions Scient. (Jan. 1921) 16 pp.
THE ORIENT 97
See H. P. J. Renaud, Isis 18 (1932) pp. 166-83.
D. S. Kasir, The Algebra of Omar Khayyam (New York,
1931) p. 126.
B. Datta, The Science, of the Sulba, a Study in Early
Hindu Geometry (London, 1932).
D. E. Smith—L. C. Karpinski, The Hindu-Arabic
Numerals (Boston, 1911).
L. C. Karpinski, Robert of Chester's Latin Translation
of the Algebra of Al-Khwarizmi (New York, 1915).
T. Hayashi, A Brief History of the Japanese Math-
ematics, Nieuw Archief voor Wiskunde 2° ser., 6
(1904-05) pp. 296-361.
D. E. Smith, Unsettled Questions Concerning the Math-
ematics of China, Scient. Monthly 33 (1931) pp.
244-250.
H. T. Colebrooke, Algebra, with Arithmetic and Men-
suration from the Sanskrit of Brahmagupta and
Bhdscara (London, 1817, revised by H. C. Banerji,
Calcutta, 2nd. ed. 1927).
F. Rosen, The Algebra of Mohammed ben Musa (London,
1831V
See S. Gandz, Quellen und Studien 2A (1932) pp. 61-85.
W .E.Clark, The AryabhatyaofAryabhata (Chicago, 1930)
.
CHAPTER V
The Beginnings in Western Europe
1. The most advanced section of the Roman Empirefrom both an economic and a cultural point of viewhad always been the East. The Western part had neverbeen based on an irrigation economy; its agriculturewas of the extensive kind which did not stimulate thestudy of astronomy. Actually the West managed verywell in its own way with a minimum of astronomy,some practical arithmetics, and some mensuration forcommerce and surveying; but the stimulus to promotethese sciences came from the East. When East andWest separated politically this stimulation almost dis-
appeared. The static civilization of the Western RomanEmpire continued with little interruption or variationfor many centuries; the Mediterranean unity of antiquecivilization also remained unchanged—and was not evenvery much affected by the barbaric conquests. In all
Germanic kingdoms, except perhaps those of Britain,the economic conditions, the social institutions, andthe intellectual life remained fundamentally what theyhad been in the declining Roman Empire. The basis ofeconomic life was agriculture, with slaves graduallyreplaced by free and tenant farmers; but in additionthere were prosperous cities and a large-scale commercewith a money economy. The central authority in theGreek-Roman world after the fall of the Western Em-pire in 476 was shared by the emperor in Constantinopleand the popes of Rome. The Catholic Church of the
98
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 99
West through its institutions and language continued as
best it could the cultural tradition of the Roman
Empire among Germanic kingdoms. Monasteries and
cultured laymen kept some of the Greek-Roman civili-
zation alive.
One of these laymen, the diplomat and philosopher
Anicius Manilius Severinus Boetius, wrote mathemat-
ical texts which were considered authoritative in the
Western world for more than a thousand years. They
reflect the cultural conditions, for they are poor in con-
tent and their very survival may have been influenced
by the belief that the author died in 524 as a martyr to
the Catholic faith. His"Institutio arithmetica," a super-
ficial translation of Nicomachus, did provide some
Pythagorean number theory which was absorbed in
medieval instruction as part of the ancient trivium and
quadrivium: arithmetic, geometry, astronomy, and
music.
It is difficult to establish the period in the West in
which the economy of the ancient Roman Empire dis-
appeared to make room for a new feudal order. Some
light on this question is shed by the hypothesis of II.
Pirenne1
,according to which the end of the ancient
Western world came with the expansion of Islam. The
Arabs dispossessed the Byzantine Empire of all its
provinces on the Eastern and Southern shores of the
Mediterranean and made the Eastern Mediterranean a
closed Muslim lake. They made commercial relations
between the Near Orient and the Christian Occident
extremely difficult for several centuries. The intellectual
avenue between the Arabic world and the Northern
'H. Pirenne, Mahomet and Charlemagne (London, 1939).
100 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
parts of the former Roman Empire, though never
wholly closed, was obstructed for centuries.
Then in Frankish Gaul and other former parts of the
Roman Empire large-scale economy subsequently van-ished; decadence overtook the cities; returns from tolls
became insignificant. Money economy was replaced bybarter and local marketing. Western Europe was re-
duced to a state of semi-barbarism. The landed aris-
tocracy rose in significance with the decline of com-merce; the North Frankish landlords, headed by the
Carolingians, became the ruling power in the land of
the Franks. The economic and cultural center moved to
the North, to Northern France and Britain. The sepa-
ration of East and West limited the effective authority
of the pope to the extent that the papacy allied itself
with the Carolingians, a move symbolized by the crown-
ing of Charlemagne in 800 as Emperor of the HolyRoman Empire. Western society became feudal andecclesiastical, its orientation Northern and Germanic.
2. During the early centuries of Western feudalismwe find little appreciation of mathematics even in the
monasteries. In the again primitive agricultural society
of this period the factors stimulating mathematics, evenof a directly practical kind, were nearly nonexistent;
and monasteric mathematics was no more than someecclesiastical arithmetic used mainly for the computa-tion of Easter-time (the so-called " computus") . Boet ius
was the highest source of authority. Of some importanceamong these ecclesiastical mathematicians was theBritish born Alcuin, associated with the court of Char-lemagne, whose Latin "Problems for the Quickening
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 101
of the Mind" (see p. 86) contained a selection which
have influenced the writers of text books for many cen-
turies. Many of these problems date back to the
ancient Orient. For example:
"A dog chasing a rabbit, which has a start of 150 feet, jumps
9 feet every time the rabbit jumps 7. In how many leaps does the
dog overtake the rabbit?"
"A wolf, a goat, and a cabbage must be moved across a river
in a boat holding only one beside the ferry man. How must he
carry them across so that the goat shall not eat the cabbage,
nor the wolf the goat?"
Another ecclesiastical mathematician was Gerbert,
a French monk, who in 999 became pope under the
name of Sylvester II. He wrote some treatises under
the influence of Boetius, but his chief importance as a
mathematician lies in the fact that he was one of the
first Western scholars who went to Spain and made
studies of the mathematics of the Arabic world.
3. There are significant differences between the de-
velopment of Western, of early Greek, and of Oriental
feudalism. The extensive character of Western agri-
culture made a vast system of bureaucratic admin-
istrators superfluous, so that it could not supply a basis
for an eventual Oriental despotism. There was no pos-
sibility in the West nf obtaining vast supplies of slaves.
When villages in Western Europe grew into towns these
towns developed into self-governing units, in which the
burghers were unable to establish a life of leisure based
on slavery. This is one of the main reasons why the
development of the Greek polis and the Western city,
which during the early stages had much in common,
102 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
deviated sharply in later periods. The medieval towns-people had to rely on their own inventive genius toimprove their standard of living. Fighting a bitter
struggle against the feudal landlords—and with muchcivil strife in addition—they emerged victorious in theTwelfth, Thirteenth, and Fourteenth Centuries. Thistriumph was based not only on a rapid expansion oftrade and money economy but also on a gradual im-provement in technology. The feudal princes often sup-ported the cities in their fight against the smallerlandlords, and then eventually extended their rule overthe cities. This finally led to the emergence of thefirst national states in Western Europe.The cities began to establish commercial relations
with the Orient, which was still the center of civilization.
Sometimes these relations were established in a peace-ful way, sometimes by violent means as in the manyCrusades. First to establish mercantile relations werethe Italian cities; they were followed by those of Franceand Central Europe. Scholars followed, or sometimespreceded, the merchant and the soldier. Spain andSicily were the nearest points of contact between Eastand West, and there Western merchants and studentsbecame acquainted with Islamic civilization. When in
1085 Toledo was taken from the Moors by the Chris-tians, Western students flocked to this city to learn thescience of the Arabs. They often employed Jewish in-
terpreters to converse and to translate, and so we findin Twelfth Century Spain Plato of Tivoli, Gherardo ofCremona, Adelard of Bath, and Robert of Chester,translatingArabic mathematical manuscripts into Latin.Thus Europe became familiar with Greek classics
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 103
through the Arabic; and by this time Western Europe
was advanced enough to appreciate this knowledge.
4. As we have said, the first powerful commercial
cities arose in Italy, where during the Twelfth and
Thirteenth Centuries Genoa, Pisa, Venice, Milan, and
Florence carried on a flourishing trade between the
Arabic world and the North. Italian merchants visited
the Orient and studied its civilization; Marco Polo's
travels show the intrepidity of these adventurers. Like
the Ionian merchants of almost two thousand years
before, they tried to study the science and the arts
of the older civilization not only to reproduce them,
but also to put them to use in their own new and
experimental system of merchant capitalism. The first
of these merchants whose mathematical studies show
a certain maturity was Leonardo of Pisa.
Leonardo, also called Fibonacci ("son of Bonaccio"),
travelled in the Orient as a merchant. On his return he
wrote his "Liber Abaci" (1202), filled with arithmetical
and algebraical information which he had collected on
his travels. In the "Practica Geometriae" (1220) Leo-
nardo described in a similar way whatever he had dis-
covered in geometry and trigonometry. He may have
been an original investigator as well, since his books
contain many examples which seem to have no exact
duplicates in Arabic literature 1. However he does quote
Al-Khwarizmi, as for instance in the discussion of the
equation xa + 10s = 39. The problem which leads to
•L C Karpinski, Amer. Math. Monthly 21 (1914) pp. 37-48,
using the Paris manuscript of Abu Kamil's algebra, claims that
Leonardo followed Abu Kamil in a whole series of problems.
104 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
the "series of Fibonacci" 0,1,1,2,3,5,8,13,21, • •, of
which each term is the sum of the two preceding terms,seems to be new and also his remarkably mature proofthat the roots of the equation x3 + 2x
2 + 10a; = 20cannot be expressed by means of Euclidean irration-
alities Va + Vb (hence cannot be constructed bymeans of compasses and ruler only). Leonardo provedit by checking upon each of Euclid's fifteen cases, andthen solved the positive root of this equation approxi-mately, finding six sexagesimal places.
The series of Fibonacci resulted from the problem:
How many pairs of rabbits can be produced from a single pairin a year if (a) each pair begets a new pair every month, whichfrom the second month on becomes productive, (b) deaths do notoccur?
The "Liber Abaci" is one of the means by which theHindu-Arabic system of numeration was introducedinto Western Europe. Their occasional use dates back tocenturies before Leonardo, when they wore importedby merchants, ambassadors, scholars, pilgrims, andsoldiers coming from Spain and from the Levant. Theoldest dated European manuscript containing the nu-merals is the "Codex Yigilanus," written in Spain in
976. However, the introduction of the ten symbolsinto Western Europe was slow; the earliest Frenchmanuscript in which they are found dates from 1275.The Greek system of numeration remained in voguealong the Adriatic for many centuries. Computationwas often performed on the ancient abacus, a boardwith counters or pebbles (often simply consisting oflines drawn in sand) similar in principle to the counting
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 105
boards still used by the Russians, Chinese, Japanese,
and by children on their baby-pens. Roman numerals
were used to registrate the result of a computation on
the abacus. Throughout the Middle Ages and even
later we find Roman numerals in merchant's ledgers,
which indicates that the abacus was used in the offices.
The introduction of Hindu-Arabic numerals met with
opposition from the public, since the use of these
symbols made merchant's books difficult to read. In
the statutes of the "Arte del Cambio" of 1299 the
bankers of Florence were forbidden to use Arabic nu-
merals and were obliged to use cursive Roman ones.
Sometime during the Fourteenth Century Italian mer-
chants began to use some Arabic figures in their account
books.1
5. With the extension of trade interest in mathe-
matics spread slowly to the Northern cities. It was at
first mainly a practical interest, and for several centuries
arithmetic and algebra were taught outside the uni-
versities by self-made reckon masters, usually ignorant
•In the Medici account books (dating from 1406) of the Scl-
fridge collection on deposit at the Harvard Graduate School of
Business Administration, Hindu-Arabic numerals frequently ap-
pear in the narrative or descriptive column. From 1439 onward
they replace Roman numerals in the money or effective column
of the books of primary entry: journals, wastebooks, etc., but
not until 1482 were Roman numerals abandoned in the money
column of the business ledgers of all but one Medici merchant.
From 1494, only Hindu-Arabic numerals arc used in all the
Medici account books. (From a letter by Dr. Florence Edler De
Hoover.) See also, F. Edler, Glossary of Medieval Terms of
Business (Cambridge, Mass., 1934) p. 389.
106 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
of the classics, who also taught bookkeeping and navi-gation. For a long time this type of mathematics keptdefinite traces of its Arabic origin, as words such as"algebra" and "algorithm" testify.
Speculative mathematics did not entirely die duringthe Middle Ages, though it was cultivated not amongthe men of practice, but among the scholastic philoso-phers. Here the study of Plato and Aristotle, com-bined with meditations on the nature of the Deity,led to subtle speculations on the nature of motion, ofthe continuum and of infinity. Origen had followedAristotle in denying the existence of the actually infin-
ite, but St. Augustine in the "Civitas Dei" had acceptedthe whole sequence of integers as an actual infinity. Hiswords were so well chosen that Georg Cantor has re-
marked that the transfinitum cannot be more ener-getically desired and cannot be more perfectly deter-mined and defended than was done by St. Augustine'.The scholastic writers of the Middle Ages, especiallySt, Thomas Aquinas, accepted Aristotle's "infinitumactu non datur,"* but considered every continuum aspotentially divisible ad infinitum. Thus there was nosmallest line, since every part of the fine had the prop-erties of the line. A point, therefore, was not a part ofa line, because it was indivisible: "ex indivisilibus non
• 'G. Cantor, Lelter to Eulenburg (1886), Ges. Abhandlungen(Berlin, 1932) pp. 401-402. The passage quoted by Cantor, Ch.XVIII of Book XII of "The City of God" (in the Healey trans-lation) is entitled "Against such as say that things infinite areabove God's knowledge."
'"There is no actually infinite."
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 107
potest compari aliquod continuum"1
. A point could
generate a line by motion. Such speculations had their
influence on the inventors of the infinitesimal calculus
in the Seventeenth Century and on the philosophers of
the transfinite in the Nineteenth; Cavalieri, Tacquet,
Bolzano and Cantor knew the scholastic authors and
pondered over the meaning of their ideas.
These churchmen occasionally reached results of more
immediate mathematical interest. Thomas Bradwar-
dine, who became Archbishop of Canterbury, investi-
gated star polygons after studying Boetius. The most
important of these medieval clerical mathematicians
was Nicole Oresme, Bishop of Lisieux in Normandy,
who played with fractional powers. Since 43 = 64 = 8
a
,
he wrote 8 as •i 4 or1.2
4, meaning 41'. He also
wrote a tract called "De latitudinibus formarum" (c.
1360), in which he graphs a dependent variable (lati-
tudo) against an independent one (longitudo), which
is subjected to variation. It shows a kind of vague
transition from coordinates on the terrestrial or celes-
tial sphere, known to the Ancients, to modern co-
ordinate geometry. This tract was printed several times
between 1482 and 1515 and may have influenced Ren-
aissance mathematicians, including Descartes.
6. The main line of mathematical advance passed
through the growing mercantile cities under the direct
l"A continuum cannot consist of indivisibles."
108 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
influence of trade, navigation, astronomy, and survey-
ing. The townspeople were interested in counting, in
arithmetic, in computation. Sombart had labeled this
interest of the Fifteenth and Sixteenth century burgher
his "Rechenhaftigkcit"1
. Leaders in the love for prac-
tical mathematics were the reckon masters, only very
occasionally joined by a university man, able, through
his study of astronomy, to understand the importance
of improving computational methods. Centers of the
new life were the Italian cities and the Central Europeancities of Nuremberg, Vienna, and Prague. The fall of
Constantinople in 1453, which ended the Byzantine
Empire, led many Greek scholars to the Western cities.
Interest in the original Greek texts increased, and it
became easier to satisfy this interest. University pro-
fessors joined with cultured laymen in studying the
texts, ambitious reckon masters listened and tried to
understand the new knowledge in their own way.
Typical of this period was Johannes Muller of Konigs-
berg, or Regiomontanus, the leading mathematical
figure of the Fifteenth Century. The activity of this
remarkable computer, instrument maker, printer, and
scientist illustrates the advances made in European
mathematics during the two centuries after Leonardo.
He was active in translating and publishing the classical
mathematical manuscripts available. His teacher,
the Viennese astronomer, George Peurbach—author
of astronomical and trigonometrical tables—had al-
ready begun a translation of the astronomy of Ptolemy
'W. Somlnirl. Der BourgeoU (Munich. Leipzig, 1913). p. 164.
The term "Rcchcnhoftigkeit" indicates a willingness to compute,
:\ In liefin the iiscl'iilncssofuritliiiicticul work. (Also London, 1915.)
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 109
from the Greek. Regiomontanus continued this trans-
lation and also translated Apollonios, Heron, and the
most difficult of all, Archimedes. His main original work
was "De triangulis omnimodus" (1464, not printed
until 1533), a complete introduction into trigonometry,
differing from our present-day texts primarily in the
fact that our convenient notation did not exist. It con-
tains the law of sines in a spherical t riangle. All theorems
had still to be expressed in words. Trigonometry, from
now on, became a science independent of astronomy.
Nasir al-dln had accomplished something similar in the
Thirteenth Century, but it is significant that his work
never resulted in much further progress, whereas Regio-
montanus' book deeply influenced further development
of trigonometry and its application to astronomy and
algebra. Regiomontanus also devoted much effort to
the computation of trigonometric tables. He has a table
of sines to radius G0.000 for intervals of one minute
(publ. 1490).
7. So far no definite step had been taken beyond
the ancient achievements of the Greeks and Arabs. The
classics remained the nee plus ultra of science. It came
t horefore as an enormous and exhilarating surprise when
Italian mathematicians of the early Sixteenth Century
actually showed that it was possible to develop a new
mathematical theory which the Ancients and Arabs
had missed. This theory, which led to the general
algebraic solution of the cubic equation, was discovered
by Scipio Del Ferro and his pupils at the University of
Bologna.
The Italian cities had continued to show proficiency
9
110 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
in mathematics after the time of Leonardo. In the
Fifteenth Century their reckon masters were well versed
in arithmetical operations, including surds (without
having any geometrical scruples) and their painters
were good geometers. Vasari in his "Lives of the
Painters" stresses the considerable interest which manyquattrocento artists showed in solid geometry. One of
their achievements was the development of perspective
by such men as Alberti and Pier Delia Francesca;
the latter also wrote a volume on regular solids. Thereckon masters found their interpreter in the Franciscan
monk Luca Pacioli, whose "Summa de Arithmetica"
was printed in 1494—one of the first mathematical
books to be printed1
. Written in Italian—and not a very
pleasant Italian—it contained all that was known in
that day of arithmetic, algebra, and trigonometry. Bynow the use of Hindu-Arabic numerals was well estab-
lished, and the arithmetical notation did not greatly
differ from ours. Pacioli ended his book with the remarkthat the solution of the equations i
3 + mx = n, x3 +
n = mx was as impossible at the present state of science
as the quadrature of the circle.
At this point began the work of the mathematicians
at the University of Bologna. This university, aroundthe turn of the Fifteenth Century, was one of the largest
and most famous in Europe. Its faculty of astronomyalone at one time had sixteen lectors. From all parts of
Europe students flocked to listen to the lectures—andto the public disputations which also attracted the
'The first printed mathematical books were a commercialarithmetic (Treviso, 1478) and a Latin edition of Euclid's Ele-
ments (Venice, Ratdolt, 1482).
ujwS
ozSa5u,
ow•x
aaaz
ws
Xf-
»—
I
oo
OP-
112 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
attention of large, sportively-minded crowds. Amongthe students at one time or another were Pacioli,
Albrecht Diirer, and Copernicus. Characteristic of the
new age was the desire not only to absorb classical
information but also to create new things, to penetrate
beyond the boundaries set by the classics. The art of
printing and the discovery of America were examples
of such possibilities. Was it possible to create newmathematics? Greeks and Orientals had tried their
ingenuity on the solution of the third degree equation
but had only solved some special cases numerically.
The Bolognese mathematicians now tried to find the
general solution.
These cubic equations could all be reduced, to three
types:
x3 + px = q, x
3 = px + q, x* + q = px,
where p and q were positive numbers. They were spe-
cially investigated by Professor Scipio Del Ferro, whodied in 1526. It may be taken on the authority of E.
Bortolotti 1, that Del Ferro actually solved all types.
He never published his solutions and only told a few
friends about them. Nevertheless, word of the discovery
became known and after Scipio's death a Venetian
reckon master, nicknamed Tartaglia ("The Stam-merer"), rediscovered his methods (1535). He showedhis results in a public demonstration, but again kept
the method by which he had obtained them a secret.
Finally he revealed his ideas to a learned Milanese
doctor, Hieronimo Cardano, who had to swear that he
•E. Bortolotti, L'algebra nella scuola matematica bolognese del
secolo XVI, Periodico di Matematica (4) 5 (1925) pp. 147-184.
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN- EUROPE 113
would keep them » secret. But when Cardano in 1545
published his stately book on algebra, the " Ars magna,"
Tartaglia discovered to his disgust that the method
was fully disclosed in the book, with due acknowledge-
ment to the discoverer, but stolen just the same. A bitter
debate ensued, with insults hurled both ways, in which
Cardano was defended by a younger gentleman scholar,
Ludovico Ferrari. Out of this war came some interesting
documents, among them the "Quaesiti" of Tartaglia
(1546) and the "Cartelli" of Ferrari (1547-48), from
which the whole history of this spectacular discovery
became public knowledge.
The solution is now known as the Cardano solution,
which for the case x3 + px = q takes the form
x =m+^+ 3_ v« + 9l_2
We see that this solution introduced quantities of
the form V a + Vb, different from the Euclidean
Va+ Vb.
Cardano's "Ars Magna" contained another brilliant
discovery: Ferrari's method of reducing the solution
of the general biquadratic equation to that of a cubic
equation. Ferrari's equation was x* + 6xa + 36 = 60ar,
which he reduced to y3 + I5if + 36# = 450. Cardano
also considered negative numbers, calling them "fic-
titious," but was unable to do anything with the so-
ealled "irreducible case" of the cubic equation in which
there arc three real solutions appearing as the sum or
difference of what we now call imaginary numbers.
This difficulty was solved by the last of the great
114 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 115
Sixteenth Century Bolognese mathematicians, Raffael
Bombelli, whose "Algebra" appeared in 1572. In this
book—and in a geometry written around 1550 which
remained in manuscript—he introduced a consistent
theory o f imaginary complex numbers. He wrote 3i as
y/0 — 9 (lit : R[0 m. 9], R for radix, m for meno).
This allowed Bombelli to solve the irreducible case by
showing, for instance, that
^52 + V0- 2209 = 4 + V0 - 1.
Bombelli 's book was widely read; Leibniz selected it for
the study of cubic equations, and Euler quotes Bombelli
in his own "Algebra" in the chapter on biquadratic
equations. Complex numbers, from now on, lost some
of their supernatural character, though full acceptance
came only in the Nineteenth Century.
It is a curious fact that the first introduction of the
iniaginaries occurred in the theory of cubic equations,
in the case where it was clear that real solutions exist
though in an unrecognizable form, and not in the
theory of quadratic equations, where our present text-
books introduce them.
8. Algebra and computational arithmetic remained
for many decades the favorite subject of mathematical
experimentation. Stimulation no longer came only from
the " Rechenhaftigkeit" of the mercantile bourgeoisie
but also from the demands made on surveying and
navigation by the leaders of the new national states.
Engineers were needed for the erection of public works
and for military constructions. Astronomy remained,
as in all previous periods, an important domain for
mathematical studies. It was the period of the great
astronomical theories of Copernicus, Tycho Brahe, and
Kepler. A new conception of the universe emerged.
Philosophical thought reflected the trends in scientific
thinking; Plato with his admiration for quantitative
mathematical reasoning gained ascendancy over Aris-
totle. Platonic influence is particularly evident in Kep-
ler's work. Trigonometrical and astronomical tables ap-
peared with increasing accuracy, especially in Germany.
The tables of G. J. Rheticus, finished in 1596 by his
pupil Valentin Otho, contain the values of all six trigo-
nometric values for every ten seconds to ten places.
The tables of Pitiscus (1613) went up to fifteen places.
The technique of solving equations and the under-
standing of the nature of their roots also improved.
The public challenge, made in 1593 by the Belgian
mathematician Adriaen Van Roomen, to solve the equa-
tion of the 45th degree
x" - 45x" + 945s41 - 12300x
3B
+ • • • - 3795a;8 + 45x = A,
was characteristic of the times. Van Roomen proposed
special cases, e.g. A = -^2 + "^2 + -^2^2' which
gives x =y2 - V2 + ^2 + "V2 + >|3'which cases
were suggested by consideration of regular polygons.
Francois Viete, a French lawyer attached to the court
of Henry IV, solved Van Roomen's problem by observ-
ing that the left hand member was equivalent to the
expression of sin<f>
in terms of sin <£/45. The solution
could therefore be found with the aid of tables. Viete
116 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
found twenty-three solutions of the form sin (0/45 —
n.8°), discarding negative roots. Viete also reduced
Cardano's solution of the cubic equation to a trigono-
metric one, in which process the irreducible case lost
its horrors by avoiding the introduction of -\/0 — a.
This solution can now be found in the textbooks of
higher algebra.
Vifete's main achievements were in the improve-
ment of the theory of equations (e.g. " In artem analyti-
cam isagoge", 1591), where he was among the first
to represent numbers by letters. The use of numerical
coefficients, even in the "rhetoric" algebra of the Dio-
phantine school, had impeded the general discussion of
algebraic problems. The work of the Sixteenth Century
algebrists (the " Cossists," after the Italian word " cosa"
for the unknown) was produced in a rather complicated
notation. Hut in Viete's "logistica speciosa" at least a
general symbolism appeared, in which lettere were used
to express numerical coefficients, the signs + and —
were used in our present meaning and "A quadratum"
was written for A'. This algebra still differed from ours
in Viete's insistence on the Greek principle of homo-
geneity, in which a product of two line segments was
necessarily conceived as an area; line segments could
therefore only be added to line segments, areas to areas,
and volumes to volumes. There was even some doubt
whether equations of degree higher than three actually
had a meaning, since they could only be interpreted
in four dimensions, a conception hard to understand in
those days.
This was the period in which computational tech-
nique reached new heights. Viete improved on Archi-
Courtesy of Scripts Malhematica
FRANCOIS VIETE (1540-1603)
118 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
medes and found v in nine decimals; shortly afterwards
r was computed in thirty-five decimals by LudolphVan Coolen, a fencing master at Delft who used in-
scribed and circumscribed regular polygons with moreand more sides. Viete also expressed t as an infinite
product (1593, in our notation):
? = cos | cos | cos ^ cos ^ .. -
The improvement in technique was a result of the
improvement in notation. The new results show clearly
that it is incorrect to say that men like Viete "merely"improved notation. Such a statement discards the pro-found relation between content and form. New results
have often become possible only because of a new modeof writing. The introduction of Hindu-Arabic numeralsis one example; Leibniz' notation for the calculus is
another one. An adequate notation reflects reality better
than a poor one, and as such appears endowed with alife of its own which in turn creates new life. Viete's
improvement in notation was followed, a generationlater, by Descartes' application of algebra to geometry.
9. Engineers and arithmeticians were in particular
demand in the new commercial states, especially France,
England, and the Netherlands. Astronomy flourished
over all Europe. Although the Italian cities were nolonger on the main road to the Orient after the discovery
of the sea route to India, they still remained centers of
importance. And so we find among the great mathema-ticians and computers of the early Seventeenth CenturySimon Stevin, an engineer, Johann Kepler, an astrono-
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 119
mcr, and Adriaan Vlacq and Ezechiel De Decker,
surveyors.
Stevin, a bookkeeper of Bruges, became an engineer
in the army of Prince Maurice of Orange, who appreci-
ated the way Stevin combined practical sense with theo-
retical understanding and originality. In "La disme"
(1585) he introduced decimal fractions as part of a proj-
ect to unify the whole system of measurements on a
decimal base. It was one of the great improvements
made possible by the general introduction of the Hindu-
Arabic system of numeration.
The other great computational improvement was the
invention of logarithms. Several mathematicians of the
Sixteenth Century had been playing with the possi-
bility of coordinating arithmetical and geometrical pro-
gressions, mainly in order to ease the work with the
complicated trigonometrical tables. An important con-
tribution toward this end was undertaken by a Scottish
laird, John Neper (or Napier), who in 1614 published
his "Mirifici logarithmorum canonis descriptio." His
central idea was to construct two sequences of numbers
so related that when one increases in arithmetical pro-
gression, the other decreases in a geometrical one. Then
the product of two numbers in the second sequence has
a simple relation to the sum of corresponding numbers
in the first, and multiplication could be reduced to
addition. With this system Neper could considerably
facilitate computational work with sines. Neper's early
attempt was rather clumsy, since his two sequences
correspond according to the modern formula
y = a e'" (or x = Nep. log y)
TllK BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN" EUROPE 121
in which a = 107
.
1 When x — *i + x2 ,we do not get
y = 2/i!/2. hut y = yij/i/a. This system did not satisfy
Neper himself, as he told his admirer Henry Briggs, a
professor at Gresham College, London. They decided on
the function y = 10r, for which x = x, + x2 actually
yields y = j/i2/j- Briggs, after Neper's death, carried
out this suggestion and in 1624 published his "Arith-
metica logarithmica" which contained the "Briggian"
logarithms in 14 places for the integers from 1 to 20.000
and from 90.000 to 100.000. The gap between 20.000
and 90.000 was filled by Ezechiel De Decker, a Dutch
surveyor, who assisted by Vlacq, published at Gouda in
1627 a complete table of logarithms. The new invention
was immediately welcomed by the mathematicians and
astronomers, and particularly by Kepler, who had had a
longand painful experience with elaborate computations.
Our explanation of logarithms by exponentials is his-
torically somewhat misleading, since the conception of
an exponential function dates only from the later part
of the Seventeenth Century. Neper had no notion of a
base. Natural logarithms, based on the function y = ex
,
appeared almost contemporaneously with the Briggian
logarithms, but their fundamental importance was not
recognized until the infinitesimal calculus was better
understood2
.
'Hence Nep. log y = 10' (In 107 - In y) = 161180957
- 10' In y; and Nep\ log 1 = 161180957; In x stands for our
natural logarithm.
•E. Wright published some natural logarithms in 1618, J.
Speidel in 1619, but after this no tables of these logarithms were
published until 1770. See F. Cajori, History of the Exponential
and Logarithmic Concepts, American Math. Monthly 20 (1913).
122 A CONCISE HISTORY OK MATHEMATICS
Literature.
For the spread of Hindu-Arabic numerals in Europe
see:
D. E. Smith—L. C. Karpinski, The Hindu-Arabic Num-erals (Boston, London, 1911)
For speculative mathematics in the Middle Ages see:
C. B. Boyer, The Concepts of the Calculus, Chapter III
(London, 1939), 346 pp.
Sixteenth and Seventeenth Century Italian mathe-
matics is discussed in a series of papers by
:
E. Bortolotti, written between 1922-28, e.g. Periodico
di matematica 5 (1925) pp. 147-184; 6 (1926) pp.
217-230; 8 (1928) pp. 19-59; Scientia 1923, pp.
385-394 and
E. Bortolotti, / contributi del Tartaglia, del Cardano, del
Ferrari, e della scuola matematica bolognese alia
teoria algebrica delle equazioni cubiche, Imola (1926)
54 pp.
Cardano's autobiography has been translated
:
G. Cardano, The Book of My Life, transl. by J.
Stoner (London, 1931).
Much information on Sixteenth and Seventeenth
Century mathematicians and their works is in the
papers of H. Bosmans S.J., most of which can be found
in the Annales de la Soctete-
Scientifique Bruxelles,
THE BEGINNINGS IN WESTERN EUROPE 123
1905-27. Complete list in A. Rome, Isis 12 (1929) p. 88.
Furthermore
:
H. S. Carslaw, The Discovery of Logarithms by Napier,
Mathem. Gazette. (1915-1916) pp. 76-84, 115-119.
E. Zinner, Leben und Wirken des Johannes Miiller von
Konigsberg genannt Regiomontanus (Munich, 1938).
J. D. Bond, The Development of Trigonometric Methods
down to the close of the Fifteenth Century, Isis 4
(1921-22) pp. 295-323.
F. A. Yeldham, The Story of Reckoning in the Middle
Ages (London, 1926).
E. J. Dyksterhuis, Simon Stevin ( 's Gravenhage, 1943).
CHAl'TKR VI
The Seventeenth Century
1. The rapid development of mathematics during the
Renaissance was due not only to the" Rechenhaftigkeit"
of the commercial classes but also to the productive use
and further perfection of machines. Machines were
known to the Orient and to classical antiquity; they had
inspired the genius of Archimedes. However, the exist-
ence of slavery and the absence of economically pro-
gressive urban life frustrated the use of machines in
these older forms of society. This is indicated by the
works of Heron, where machines are described.but only
for the purpose of amusement or deception.
In the later Middle Ages machines came in use in
small manufactures, in public works, and in mining.
These were enterprises undertaken by city merchants
or by princes in search of ready money and often con-
ducted in opposition to the city guilds. Warfare and
navigation also stimulated the perfection of tools and
their further replacement by machines.
A well-established silk industry existed in Lucca and
in Venice as early as the Fourteenth Century. It was
based on division of labor and on the use of water power.
In the Fifteenth Century mining in Central Europe
developed into a completely capitalistic industry based
technically on the use of pumps and hoisting machines
which allowed the boring of deeper and deeper layers.
The invention of firearms, and of printing, the con-
struction of windmills and canals, the building of ships
10 12S
126 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICSTHE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 127
to sail the ocean, required engineering skill and madepeople technically conscious. The perfection of clocks,
useful for astronomy and navigation and often installed
in public places, brought admirable pieces of mechan-ism before the public eye; the regularity of their motionand the possibility they offered of indicating time ex-
actly made a deep impression upon the philosophical
mind. During the Renaissance and even centuries later
the clock was taken as a model of the universe. This wasan important factor in the development of the mechan-ical conception of the world.
Machines led to theoretical mechanics and to the
scientific study of motion and of change in general.
Antiquity had already produced texts on statics, andthe new study of theoretical mechanics naturally based
itself upon the statics of the classical authors. Bookson machines appeared long before the invention of
printing, first empirical descriptions (Kyeser, early Fif-
teenth Century), later more theoretical ones, such as
Leon Battista Alberti's book on architecture (c. 1450)
and the writings of Leonardo Da Vinci (c. 1500).
Leonardo's manuscripts contain the beginnings of a
definite mechanistic theory of nature. Tartaglia in his
"Nuova scienzia" (1537) discussed the construction of
clocks and the orbit of projectiles—but had not yetfound the parabolic orbit, first discovered by Galileo.
The publication of Latin editions of Heron and Archi-
medes stimulated this kind of research, especially F.
Commandino's edition of Archimedes, which appearedin 1558 and brought the ancient method of integration
within the reach of the mathematicians. Commandinohimself applied these methods to the computation of
centers of gravity (1565), though with less rigor than
his master.
This computation of centers of gravity remained a
favorite topic of Archimedian scholars, who used their
study of statics to obtain a working knowledge of the
rudiments of what we now recognize as the calculus.
Outstanding among such students of Archimedes is
Simon Stevin who wrote on centers of gravity and on
hydraulics both in 1586, Luca Valerio who wrote on
centers of gravity in 1604 and on the quadrature of the
parabola in 1606, and Paul Guldin in whose "Centro-
baryca" (1641) we find the so-called theorem of Guldin
on centroids, already explained by Pappus. In the wake
of the early pioneers came the great works of Kepler,
Cavalieri, and Torricelli, in which they evolved methods
which eventually led to the invention of the calculus.
2. Typical of these authors was their willingness to
abandon Archimedian rigor for considerations often
based on non-rigorous, sometimes "atomic," assump-
tions—probably without knowing that Archimedes, in
his letter to Eratosthenes, had also used such methods
for their heuristic value. This was partly due to im-
patience with scholasticism among some, though not
all, of these authors, since several of the pioneers were
Catholic priests trained in scholasticism. The mainreason was the desire for results, which the Greek
method was unable to provide quickly.
The revolution in astronomy, connected with the
names of Copernicus, Tycho Brahe, and Kepler, opened
entirely new visions of man's place in the universe and
man's power to explain the phenomena of astronomy
Courtesy oj Script* Mnthemalioi
JOHANN KEPLER (1571-1630)
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 129
in a rationalistic way. The possibility of a celestial
mechanics to supplement terrestrial mechanics increased
the boldness of the men of science. In the works of
Johann Kepler the stimulating influence of the new
astronomy on problems involving large computations
as well as infinitesimal considerations is particularly
evident. Kepler even ventured into volume computa-
tion for its own sake, and in his " Stereometria doliorum
vinorum" ("Solid geometry of wine barrels", 1615)
evaluated the volumes of solids obtained by rotating
segments of conic sections about an axis in their plane.
He broke with Archimedian rigor; his circle area was
composed of an infinity of triangles with common vertex
at the center; his sphere consisted of an infinity of
pointed pyramids. The proofs of Archimedes, Kepler
said, were absolutely rigorous, "absolutae et omnibus
numeris perfectae"1
, but he left them to the people who
wished to indulge in exact demonstrations. Each suc-
cessive author was free to find his own kind of rigor, or
lack of rigor, for himself.
To Galileo Galilei we owe the new mechanics of
freely falling bodies, the beginning of the theory of
elasticity, and a spirited defense of the Copernican
system. Above all we owe to Galileo, more than to any
other man of his period, the spirit of modern science
based on the harmony of experiment and theory. In
the "Discorsi" (1638) Galileo was led to the mathe-
matical study of motion, to the relation between dis-
tance, velocity, and acceleration. He never gave a
systematic explanation of his ideas on the calculus,
leaving this to his pupils Torricelli and Cavalieri. Indeed,
"'abaolute and in all respecte perfect"
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 131
Galileo's ideas on these questions of pure mathematicswere quite original, as appears from his remark that"neither is the number of squares less than the totality
of all numbers, nor the latter greater than the former."
This defense of the actually infinite (given by Salviati
in the "Discorsi") was consciously directed against theAristotelian and scholastic position (represented bySimplicio). The "Discorsi" also contain the parabolic
orbit of the projectile, with tables for height and rangeas functions of the angle of elevation and given initial
velocity. Salviati also remarks that the catenary looks
like a parabola, but does not give the precise description
of the curve.
The time had now arrived for a first systematic
exposition of the results reached so far in what we nowcall the calculus. This exposition appeared in the"Geo-metria indivisibilibus continuorum" (1635) of Bonaven-tura Cavalieri, professor at the University of Bologna.Here Cavalieri established a simple form of the calculus,
basing it on the scholastic conception of the "indivisi-
buV", the point generating the line, the line generat-ing the plane by motion. Cavalieri, therefore, had noinfinitesimals or "atoms." He came to his results bythe "principle of Cavalieri," which concludes that twosolids of equal altitudes have the same volume, if planecross sections at equal height have the same area. It
Cnurlrgy of Ocnpta Mathematica
GALILEO (1564-1642)
lF. Cajori, Indivisibles and "ghosts of departed quantities" in theHistory of Mathematics, Scientia 1925. pp. 301-306; E. Hoppe,Zur GeschichU der Infinitesimalrechnung bis Leibniz und Newton,Jahresb. Deutsch. Math. Verein.37. (1928) pp. 148-187. On certainstatements in Hoppe see C. B. Boyer, I.e., pp. 192, 206, 209.
132 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS I. iv re Second.
allowed him to perform the equivalent of the integration
of polynomials.
3. This gradual evolution of the calculus was con-
siderably stimulated by the publication of Descartes'
"Geometric" (1637), which brought the whole field of
classical geometry within the scope of the algebrists.
The book was originally published as an appendix to
the "Discours de la Meihode", the discourse on reason,
in which the author explained his rationalistic approach
to the study of nature. Ren6 Descartes was a French-
man from Touraine, lived the life of a gentleman, served
for a while in the army of Maurice of Orange, stayed
for many years in the Netherlands, and died in Stock-
holm to which city be had been invited by the Queen
of Sweden. In accordance with marly other great think-
ers of the Seventeenth Century, Descartes searched for
a general method of thinking in order to be able to
facilitate inventions and to find the truth in the sciences.
Since the only known natural science with some degree
of systematic coherence was mechanics, and the key to
the understanding of mechanics was mathematics,
mathematics became the most important means for
the understanding of the universe. Moreover, mathe-
matics with its convincing statements was itself the
brilliant example that truth could be found in science.
The mechanistic philosophy of this period thus came to
a conclusion which was similar to that of the Platonists,
but for a different reason. Platonists, believing in au-
thority, and Cartesians, believing in reason, both found
in mathematics the queen of the sciences.
Descartes published his "Geomeirie" as an applica-
A pro's celapreoantvn point a difcretion dans lacourbe,
comme C, fur lequel ie fuppofe que l'inftrument qui fcrt
aladefcrireeftappliqucf, ic tire de ce point C laligne
C B parallele aG A, & pourceque C B & B A font deux
quantity indetermine'es & inconnues , ie les nomme
l'vnej &l'autrex. maisaffin dc trouuer lc rapport de
Ivneal'autrc; ieconfidere aufly les quantitds connues
qui determines la defcription dc cctc ligne courbe,
commeG A que ienomme a, K L que ic nommc b,&
N L parallele aG A qucie nohimc c puis ic dis, comme
NLeftaLK.oufai.ainf.CB.ou^cftaBK, qui eft
par confequcnt-*y:&B Left 7 ;-»/-,& A Left*-+-
fj - b.de plus comme C Belt a LB.ouy a jy-b, ainfi
«,ouG A, cfti LA, ou .v-r-7.v-i.de facon que mul-
S f tipliant
A i-Ai -imii i: i'Ai;i. in di>! \iiti>' Lit (.I'liiiii'lrir
134 A C0NCI8E HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
tion of his general method of unification, in this casethe unification of algebra and geometry. The merits of
the book, according to the commonly accepted pointof view, consist mainly in the creation of so-called
analytical geometry. It is true that this branch of
mathematics eventually evolved under the influence of
Descartes' book, but the "Geom&rie" itself can hardlybe considered a first textbook on this subject. There areno "Cartesian" axes and no equations of the straight
line and of conic sections are derived, though a par-
ticular equation of the second degree is interpreted as
denoting a conic section. Moreover, a large part of thebook consists of a theory of algebraic equations, con-taining the "rule of Descartes" to determine the numberof positive and negative roots.
We must keep in mind that Apollonios already had acharacterization of conic sections by means of what wenow—with Leibniz—call coordinates, and Pappos hadin his "Collection" a "Treasury of Analysis" ("Analy-omenos"), in which we have only to modernize thenotation to obtain a consistent application of algebrato geometry. Even graphical representations occur be-
fore Descartes (Oresme). Descartes' merits lie aboveall in his consistent application of the well developedalgebra of the early Seventeenth Century to thegeometrical analysis of the Ancients, and by this, in
an enormous widening of its applicability. A secondmerit is Descartes' final rejection of the homogeneityrestrictions of his predecessors which even vitiated
VieteV'logistica speciosa," so that x*, x*, xy were nowconsidered as line segments. An algebraic equation be-came a relation between numbers, a new advance in
REN* DESCAHTES (1596-1650)
136 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
mathematical abstraction necessary for the general
treatment of algebraic curves.
Much in Descartes' notation is already modern; we
find in his book expressions such as Ja + W-r aa + 66,
which differs from our own notation only in Descartes'
still writing aa for a" (which is even found in Gauss),though he has a
3for aaa, a* for aaaa, etc. It is not hard
to find one's way in his book, but we must not look for
our modern analytical geometry.
A little closer to such analytical geometry came Pierre
Fermat, a lawyer at Toulouse, who wrote a short paperon geometry probably before the publication of Des-cartes' book, but which was only published in 1679.In this "Isagoge" we find the equations y = mx, xy =&*» x* + y
2 = a", xa ± oV = 6
sassigned to lines and
conies, with respect to a system of (usually perpendicu-lar) axes. However, since it was written in Viete's nota-tion, the paper looks more archaic than Descartes'
"Geometric." At the time when Format's "Isagoge"was printed there were already other publications in
which algebra was applied to Apollonios' results, not-ably the "Tractatus de sectionibus conicis" (1655) byJohn Wallis and a part of the "Elementa curvarumlinearum" (1659) written by Johan De Witt, grandpensionary of Holland. Both these works were writtenunder the direct influence of Descartes. But progresswas very slow; even L'Hospital's "Traite" analytiqucdes sections coniques" (1707) has not much more thana transcription of Apollonios into algebraic language.All authors hesitated to accept negative values for thecoordinates. The first to work boldly with algebraic
PASCAL EXPLAINS TO DESCARTES HIS PLANS FOB
EXPEBIMENTS IN WEIGHT
(From a painting by Chartran in the Sorbonne)
The group in the right hand corner consists of Desargues,
Mereenne, Pascal and Descartes.
138 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
equations was Newton in his study of cubic curves
(1703); the first analytic geometry of conic sections
which is fully emancipated from Apollonios appeared
only with Euler's " Introductio" (1748).
4. The appearance of Cavalieri's book stimulated a
considerable number of mathematicians in different
countries to study problems involving infinitesimals.
The fundamental problems began to be approachedin a more abstract form and in this way gained in
generality. The tangent problem, consisting in the
search for methods to find the tangent to a given
curve at a given point, took a more and more prom-inent place beside the ancient problems involving vol-
umes and centers of gravity. In this search there weretwo marked trends, a geometrical and an algebraic one.
The followers of Cavalieri, notably Torricelli and Isaac
Barrow, Newton's teacher, followed the Greek methodof geometrical reasoning without caring too much aboutits rigor. Christiaan Huygens also snowed a definite
partiality for Greek geometry. There were others,
notably Fermat, Descartes, and John Wallis, whoshowed the opposite trend and brought the new algebra
to bear upon the subject. Practically all authors in
this period from 1630 to 1660 confined themselves to
questions dealing with algebraic curves, especially those
with equation amy" = b"x
m. And they, found, each in
his own way, formulas equivalent to Jl x" dx =a"*
l
/(m -f- i), first for positive integer m, later for mnegative integer and fractional. Occasionally a non-algebraic curve appeared, such as the cycloid (roulette)
investigated by Descartes and Blaise Pascal; Pascal's
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 139
"Traite" general de la roulette" (1658), a part of a
booklet published under the name of A. Dettonville,
had great influence on young Leibniz.1
In this period several characteristic features of the
calculus began to appear. Fermat discovered in 1638 a
method to find maxima and minima by changing
slightly the variable in a simple algebraic equation and
then letting the change disappear; it was generalized
in 1658 to more general algebraic curves by Johannes
Hudde, a burgomaster of Amsterdam. There were deter-
minations of tangents, volumes, and centroids, but the
relation between integration and differentiation as in-
verse problems was not really grasped (except perhaps
by Barrow). Pascal occasionally used expansions in
term of small quantities in which he dropped the terms
of lower dimensions—anticipating the debatable as-
sumption of Newton that (i + dx) {y + dy) - xy =
xdy +ydx. Pascal defended his procedure by appealing
to intuition ("esprit de finesse") rather than to logic
("esprit de g6om6tric"), here anticipating Bishop Ber-
keley's criticism of Newton*
Scholastic thought entered into this search for new
methods not only through Cavalieri but also through
the work of the Belgian Jesuit, Gr6goire De Saint
Vincent and his pupils and associates, Paul Guldin and
Andre1
Tacquet. These men were inspired by both the
spirit of their age and the medieval scholastic writings
on the nature of the continuum and the latitude of
H. Bosnians, Sur I'oeuwe malhimalique de Blaise Pascal, Revue
des Questions Scicntifiquee (1929), 63 pp.lB. Pascal, Oeuvres (Paris, 1908-1914) XII., p. 9, XIII, pp.
141-155.
140 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
forms. In their writings the term "exhaustion" for
Archimedes' method appears for the first time. Tacquet's
book, "On Cylinders and Rings" (1651) influences
Pascal.
This fervid activity of mathematicians in a period
when no scientific periodicals existed led to discussion
circles and to constant correspondence. Some figures
gained merit by serving as a center of scientific inter-
change. The best known of these men is the Minorite
Father Marin Mersenne, whose name as a mathemati-cian is preserved in Mersenne's numbers. With himcorresponded Descartes, Fermat, Desargues, Pascal,
and many other scientists.1
Academics crystallized outof the discussion groups of learned men. They arose in away as opposition to the universities which had devel-
oped in the scholastic period—with some exceptions
such as Leiden University—and still fostered the medi-eval attitude of presenting knowledge in fixed forms.
The new academies, on the contrary, expressed the newspirit of investigation. They typified "this age drunkwith the fulness of new knowledge, busy with the up-rooting of superannuated superstitions, breaking loose
from traditions of the past, embracing most extravaganthopes for the future. Here the individual scientist
learned to be contented and proud to have added aninfinitesimal part to the sum of knowledge; here, in
short, the modern scientist was evolved."1
"'Informer Merecnne d'une decouverte, c'6tait la publier par1'Europe entire," writes H. Bosnians (I.e., p. 43: "To informMersenne of a discovery, meant to publish it throughout thewhole of Europe").
*M. Ornstein, The Role of Scientific Societies in the Seventeenth
Century (Chicago, 1913).
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 141
The first academy was founded in Naples (1560); it
was followed by the "Accadcmia dei Lincei" in Rome
(1603). The Royal Society dates from 1662, the French
Academy from 1666. Wallis was a charter member of
the Royal Society, Huygens of the French Academy.
5. Next to Cavalieri's one of the most important
books written in this period of anticipation is Wallis'
"Arithmetic!! infinitorum" (1655). The author was from
1643 until his death in 1703 the Savilian professor of
geometry at Oxford. Already the title of his book shows
that Wallis intended to go beyond Cavalieri with his
"Gcomctria indivisibilium" ; it was the new "arith-
metica" (algebra) which Wallis wanted to apply, not
the- ancient geometry. In this process Wallis extended
algebra into a veritable analysis—the first mathema-
tician to do so. His methods of dealing with infinite
processes were often crude, but he obtained new results;
he introduced infinite series and infinite products and
used with great boldness imaginaries, negative and frac-
tional exponents. He wrote » for ^ (and claimed that
— 1 > <» ). Typical of his results is the expansion
x _ 2-2-44G-6-88 • ••
2~ 1-3-3-5-5-779
Wallis was only one of a whole series of brilliant men
of this period, who enriched mathematics with discovery
after discovery. The driving force behind this flowering
of creative science, unequalled since the great days of
Greece, was only in part the ease with which the new
techniques could be handled. Many great thinkers were
ii
142 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
in search of more: of a "general method"—sometimesconceived in a restricted sense as a method of mathe-matics, sometimes more general as a method of under-standing nature and of creating new inventions. Thisis the reason why in this period all outstanding philoso-
phers were mathematicians and all outstanding math-ematicians philosophers. The search for new inventionssometimes led directly to mathematical discoveries. Afamous example is the "Horologium oscillatorium"
(1673) of Christiaan Huygens, where the search for
better timepieces led not only to pendulum clocks butalso to the study of evolutes and involutes of a planecurve. Huygens was a Hollander of independent meanswho stayed for many years in Paris; he was eminent as
a physicist as well as an astronomer, established thewave theory of light, and explained that Saturn hada ring. His book on pendulum clocks was of influence onNewton's theory of gravitation; it represents withWallis' "Arithmetica" the most advanced form of thecalculus in the period before Newton and Leibniz. Theletters and books of Wallis and of Huygens abound in
new discoveries, in rectifications, envelopes, and quadra-tures. Huygens studied the tractrix, the logarithmic
curve, the catenary, and established the cycloid asa tautochronous curve. Despite this wealth of results,
many of which were found after Leibniz had publishedhis calculus, Huygens belongs definitely to the periodof anticipation. He confessed to Leibniz that he neverwas able to familiarize himself with Leibniz' method.Wallis, in the same way, never found himself at home in
Newton's notation. Huygens was one of the few greatSeventeenth Century mathematicians who took rigor
CHIUSTIAAN HUYGENS (1629-1695)
144 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
seriously; his methods were always strictly Archi-
median.
6. The activity of the mathematicians of this periodstretched into many fields, new and old. They enrichedclassical topics with original results, cast new light uponancient fields, and even created entirely new subjects
of mathematical research. An example of the first case
was Fermat's study of Diophantos; an example of thesecond case was Desargues' new interpretation of geo-metry. The mathematical theory of probability was anentirely new creation.
Diophantos became available to a Latin readingpublic in 1621". In Fermat's copy of this translation
are found his famous marginal notes, which his sonpublished in 1070. Among them we find Fermat's "greattheorem" that x" + y" = z" is impossible for positive
integer values of x, y,z,nitn > 2, which led Kummerin 1847 to his theory of ideal numbers. A proof validfor all n has not yet been given, though the theorem is
certainly correct for a large number of values.'2
Fermat wrote in the margin beside Diophantos II 8:
"To divide a square number into two other squarenumbers," the following words: "To divide a cube intotwo other cubes, a fourth power, or in general anypower whatever into two powers of the same denomi-nation above the second is impossible, and I haveassuredly found an admirable proof of this, bul themargin is too narrow to contain it." If Fermat had such
'First roiidily available Latin translations: Euclid 14S2; Ptol-emy 1515; Archimndcs 1558; Apollonios I-IV, 1566, V-VII 1061;Pappos 1589; Diophantos 1621.
•See H. S. Vandiver, Am. Math. Monthly. 53 (1946) pp. 555-78.
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 145
admirable proof, then three centuries of intense research
have failed to produce it again. It is safer to assume
that even the great Fermat slept sometimes.
Another marginal note of Fermat states that a prime
of form 4n + 1 can be expressed once, and only once, as
the sum of two squares, which theorem was later dem-
onstrated by Euler. The other "theorem of Fermat,"
which states that a"'1 — 1 is divisible by p when p is
prime and a is prime to p, appears in a letter of 1640;
this theorem can be demonstrated by elementary means.
Fermat was also the first to assert that the equation
x3 — Ay1 = 1 (A a non-square integer) has an un-
limited number of integer solutions.
Fermat and Pascal were the founders of the mathe-
matical theory of probabilities. The gradual emergence
of the interest in problems relating to probabilities is
primarily due to the development of insurance, but the
specific questions which stimulated great mathematic-
ians to think about this matter came from requests of
noblemen gambling in dice or cards. In the words of
Poisson: "Un probleme relatif aux jeux de hasard,
propose^ a un austere jans6niste par un homme du
monde, a 6t6 l'origine du calcul des probability"'.
This "man of the world" was the Chevalier De Mere\
who approached Pascal with a question concerning the
so-called "probleme des points". Pascal began a corres-
pondence with Fermat on this problem and on related
questions, and both men established some of the founda-
'"A problem concerning games of chance, proposed by a manof the world to an austere Jansenist, was the origin of the calculus
of probabilities" (S. D. Poisson, Recherches sur la probabililt des
jugements, 1837, p. 1).
BLAISE PASCAL (1623-1662)
148 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
tions of the theory of probability (1654). When Huygens
came to Paris he heard of this correspondence and tried
to find his own answers; the result was the "De ratio-
ciniis in ludo aleae" (1657), the first treatise on prob-
ability. The next steps were taken by De Witt and
Ilalley, who constructed tables of annuities (1671 , 1693).
Blaise Pascal was the son of Etiennc Pascal, a cor-
respondent of Merscnnc; the "limacon of Pascal" is
named after Etienne. Blaise developed rapidly under
his father's tutelage and at the age of sixteen discovered
"Pascal's theorem" concerning a hexagon inscribed in
a conic. It was published in 1641 on a single sheet of
paper and showed the influence of Desargues. A few-
years later Pascal invented a computing machine. Atthe age of twenty-five he decided to live the ascetic life
of a Jansenist in the convent of Port Royal, but con-
tinued to devote time to science and to literature. His
treaty on the "arithmetical triangle" formed by the
binomial coefficients and useful in probability appeared
posthumously in 1664. We have already mentioned his
work on integration and his speculations on the infin-
itesimal, which influenced Leibniz.
Gerard Desargues was an architect from Lyons andthe author of a book on perspective (1636). His pam-phlet with the curious title of "Brouillon projet d'une
atteinte aux eVenemcnts des rencontres d'un cone avec
un plan'" (1639) contains in a curious botanical lan-
guage some of the fundamental conceptions of synthetic
geometry, such as the points at infinity, involutions,
polarities. His "Desargues' theorem" on perspective
'"Proposed draft of ao attempt to deal with the events of
the meeting of a cone witli a plane."
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 149
triangles was published in 1648. These ideas did not
show their full fertility until the Nineteenth Century.
7. A general method of differentiation and integra-
tion, derived in the full understanding that one process
is the inverse of the other, could only be discovered by
men who mastered the geometrical method of the
Greeks and of Cavalieri, as well as the algebraic method
of Descartes and Wallis. Such men could have appeared
only after 1660, and they actually did appear in Newton
ami Leibniz. Much has been written about the priority
of the discovery, but it is now established that both men
found their methods independently of each other. New-
ton had the calculus first (Newton in 1665-66; Leibniz
in 1673-76), but Leibi:iz published it first (Leibniz
1684-86; Newton 1704-1736). Leibniz' school was far
more brilliant than Newton's school.
Isaac Newton was the son of a country squire in
Lincolnshire, England. He studied at Cambridge under
Isaac Barrow who in 1669 yielded the Lucasian pro-
fessorship to his pupil—a remarkable academic event
since Barrow frankly acknowledged Newton to bo Ins
superior. Newton stayed at Cambridge until 1696 when
he accepted the position of warden, and later of master,
of the mint. His tremendous authority is primarily
based on his " Philosophiae naturalis principia math-
ematica" (1687), an enormous tome establishing me-
chanics on an axiomatic foundation and containing the
law of gravitation—the law which brings the apple to
the earth and keeps the moon moving around the earth.
He showed by rigorous mathematical deduction how the
empirically established laws of Kepler on planetary
6IR ISAAC NEWTON (1642-1727)
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 151
motion were the result of the gravitational law of inverse
squares and gave a dynamical explanation of many
aspects of the motions of heavenly bodies and of the
tides. He solved the two-body problem for spheres and
laid the beginnings of a theory of the moon's motion.
By solving the problem of the attraction of spheres he
also laid the foundation of potential theory. His axio-
matic treatment postulated absolute space and absolute
time. , ,.
The geometrical form of the demonstrations hardly
shows that the author was in full possession of the
calculus, which he called the "theory of fluxions.
Newton discovered his general method during the years
1665-66 when he stayed at his birthplace in the country
to escape from the plague which infested Cambridge.
From this period also date his fundamental ideas on
universal gravitation, as well as the law of the composi-
tion of light. "There are no other examples of achieve-
ment in the history of science to compare with that of
Newton during those two golden years," remarks Pro-
fessor More'.
Newton's discovery of" fluxions" was intimately con-
nected with his study of infinite series in Walhs' " Arith-
metica." It brought him to extend the binomial theorem
to fractional and negative exponents and thus to the
discovery of the binomial series. This again helped him
greatly in establishing his theory of fluxions to all
functions, whether algebraic or transcendental. A flux-
ion", expressed by a dot placed over a letter ( pricked
>L. T. More, Isaac NeuUm. A Biography (N. Y., London, 1934)
p. 41.
152 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
letters") was a finite value, a velocity; the letters with-out the dot represented "fluents."
Here is an example of the way in which Newton ex-
plained his method ("Method of Fluxions", 1736): Thevariables of fluents are denoted by v, x,y,z, "andthe velocities by which every fluent is increased by its
generating motion (which I may c&\\ fluxions, or simplyvelocities, or celerities), I shall represent by the sameletters pointed, thus v, x, y, z." Newton's infinitesimals
are called "moments of fluxions," which arc representedby vo, xo, yo, zo, o being "an infinitely small quantity."Newton then proceeds:
"Thus let any equation x3 — ax
1 + axy —y3 =
be given, and substitute x + xo for x, y + yo for y,and there will arise
i3 + 3x
3xo + Zx'xoxo + iV - ax
2 - 2axxo
- axoxo + axy + ayxo + axoyo + axyo
- V* ~ Sy'i/o - Zyyoyo - y3o3 =
'|Now, by supposition, x3 - ax
3 + axy - y3 = 0,
which therefore, being expunged and the remainingterms being divided by o, there will remain
3x2x - 2axx + ayx + axy - 3y
7y + 3xxxo - axxo
+ axyo — Zyyyo + x3oo — y
3oo = 0.
"But whereas zero is supposed to be infinitely little,
that it may represent the moments of quantities, theterms that are multiplied by it will be nothing in respect
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 153
to the rest; I therefore reject them, and there remains
3i2
i - 2axx + ayx + axy - 3y7y = 0."
This example shows that Newton thought of his
derivatives primarily as velocities, but it also shows that
there was a certain vagueness in his mode of expression.
Are the symbols "o" zeros? are they infinitesimals? or
are they finite numbers? Newton has tried to make his
position clear by the theory of "prime and ultimate
ratios," which he introduced in the "Principia" and
which involved the conception of limit but in such a
way that it was very hard to understand it.
"Those ultimate ratios with which quantities vanish are not
truly the ratios of ultimate quantities, but limits toward which
the ratios of quantities, decreasing without limit, do always
converge, and to which they approach nearer than by any given
difference, but never go beyond, nor in effect attain to, until the
quantities have diminished in infinitum". (Principia I, Sect. I,
last scholium).
"Quantities, and the ratio of quantities, which in any finite
time converge continually to equality, and before the end of that
time approach nearer the one to the other than by any given
difference, become ultimately equal" (IB, I, I, Lemma I).
This was far from clear, and the difficulties which the
understanding of Newton's theory of fluxions involved
led to much confusion and severe criticism by Bishop
Berkeley in 1734. The misunderstandings were not re-
moved until the modern limit concept was well estalv
lished.
Newton also wrote on conies and plane cubic curves.
In the "Enumeratio linearum tertii ordinis" (1704) he
gave a classification of plane cubic curves into 72
154 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
species, basing himself on bis theorem that every cubiccan be obtained from a "divergent parabola" y
3 =ax3 + bx* + ex + d by central projection from oneplane upon another. This was the first important newresult reached by the application of algebra to geometry,all previous work being simply the translation of Apol-lonios into algebraic language. Another contribution ofNewton was his method of finding approximations tothe roots of numerical equations, which he explainedon the example x" - 2x - 5 = 0, which yields x =2.09455147.
The difficulty in estimating Newton's influence onhis contemporaries lies in the fact that he always hesi-
tated to publish his discoveries. He first tested the lawof universal gravitation in 1665-66, but did not an-nounce it until he presented the manuscript of most ofthe"Principia" to the printer (1686). His"Arithmeticauniversalis," consisting of lectures on algebra deliveredbetween 1673-1683, was published in 1707. His work onseries, which dates from 1669, was announced in a letterto Oldenburg in 1676 and appeared in print in 1711.His quadrature of curves, of 1671, was not publisheduntil 1704; this was the first time that the theory offluxions was placed before the world. His "Method ofFluxions" itself only appeared after his death in 1736.
8. Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz was born in Leipzigand spent most of his life near the court of Hanover in
the service of the dukes, of which one became King ofEngland under the name of George I. He was even morecatholic in his interests than the other great thinkers ofhis century; his philosophy embraced history, theology,
<;<OOTTFKIED WIU1ELM LEIBNIZ (1646-1716))
From a picture in the Uffizi Gallery, Florence
156 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
linguistics, biology, geology, mathematics, diplomacy,
and the art of inventing. He was one of the first after
Pascal to invent a computing machine; he imagined
steam engines, studied Sanskrit, and tried to promote
the unity of Germany. The search for a universal
method by which he could obtain knowledge, makeinventions, and understand the essential unity of the
universe was the mainspring of his life. The "scientia
generalis" he tried to build had many aspects, and
several of them led Leibniz to discoveries in mathe-matics. His search for a " characteristica generalis" led
to permutations, combinations, and symbolic logic; his
search for a "lingua universalis", in which all errors of
thought would appear as computational errors, led not
only to symbolic logic but also to many innovations in
mathematical notation. Leibniz was one of the greatest
inventors of mathematical symbols. Few men have
understood so well the unity of form and content. His
invention of the calculus must be understood against
this philosophical background; it was the result of his
search for a "lingua universalis" of change and of
motion in particular.
Leibniz found his new calculus between 1673 and
1676 under the personal influence of Huygens and bythe study of Descartes and Pascal. He was stimulated byhis knowledge that Newton was reported to be in the
possession of such a method. Where Newton's approach
was primarily cinemetical, Leibniz' was geometrical;
he thought in terms of the "characteristic triangle"
(dx, dy, ds), which had already appeared in several other
writings, notably in Pascal and in Barrow's "Geomet-
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 157
rical Lectures" of 1670.' The first publication of Leibniz'
form of calculus occurred in 1684 in a six page article
in the "Acta Eruditorum," a mathematical periodical
which he had founded in 1682. The paper had the char-
acteristic title, "Nova methodus pro maximis et min-
imis, itemque tangentibus, quae nee fractas nee irra-
tionales quantitates moratur, et singulare pro illi calculi
genus."2It was a barren and obscure account, but it
contained our symbols dx, dy and the rules of differentia-
tion, including d(uv) = udv + vdu and the differential
for the quotient, with the condition dy = for extreme
values and d?y = for points of inflexion. This paper
was followed in 1686 by another with the rules of the
integral calculus, containing the / symbol. It expressed
the equation of the cycloid as
y=V2x-x> + 1^=^An extremely fertile period of mathematical pro-
ductivity began with the publication of these papers.
Leibniz was joined after 1687 by the Bernoulli brothers
who eagerly absorbed his methods. Before 1700 these
men had found most of our undergraduate calculus,
together with important sections of more advanced
'The term "triangulum charactcristicum" seems to have first
been used by Leibniz, who found it by reading Pascal's Traiti
des sinus du quart de cercle, part of his Dettonville letters (1658).
It had already occurred in Snellius' Tiphys Batavus (1624) pp.
22-25.
'"A new method for maxima and minima, as well as tangents,
which is not obstructed by fractional and irrational quantities,
and a curious type of calculus for it."
12
158 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
fields, including the solution of some problems in thecalculus of variations. By 1696 the first textbook oncalculus appeared, written by the Marquis de l'Hospital,
a pupil of Johann Bernoulli, who published his teacher's
lectures on the differential calculus in the "Analyse desinfiniment petits." This book contains the so-called
"rule of l'Hospital" of finding the limiting value of afraction whose two terms both tend toward zero.
Our notation of the calculus is due to Leibniz, eventhe names "calculus differentialis" and "calculus in-
tegralis."1
Because of his influence the sign = is usedfor equality and the • for multiplication. The terms"function" and "coordinates" are due to Leibniz, aswell as the playful term "osculating." The series
•^ = i_I + I_l , ..4 1 3
T5 7 ^ '
•»-• -•-$ +$-»are named after Leibniz, though he has not the priorityof the discovery. (This seems to go to James Gregory,a Scotch mathematician, who also tried to prove thatthe quadrature of the circle with compass and ruler is
impossible.)
Leibniz' explanation of the foundations of the calculussuffered from the same vagueness as Newton's. Some-times his dx, dy were finite quantities, sometimes quan-
'Leibniz suggested the name "calculus suinmatorius" first,
but in 1696 Leibniz and Johann Bernoulli agreed on the name"calculus integralis." Modern analysis has returned to Leibniz'early terminology. See further: F. Cajori, Leibniz, the MasterBuilder of Mathematical Notations, Isis 7 (1925) pp. 412-429.
I.
NOVA METIIODtS I'ltO MAXIMIS KT MINIMIS. ITEMUUE TAN-
GEYriBlS, <JlAE .NKC KIIACTAS NEC IIIHATIONALES
».»l ANTITATES MOItATLR, ET SINGliLAIlE I'KO
1I.I.IS (AI.CL1.I GEMS*).
Sil 1% Ill) axis AX. i:l cufvac plures. ul VV, WW, YV, ZZ,
ninnilll ordinalae ad .item normalcs, VX, WX, YX, ZX, quae vo-
cenliir respective v, xv, y. x, i:t i|>sa AX, abscissa al) axe, vocelur I.
Tangrnies sim VII, VtT. YD, ZE, axi ocuirrentes respective in
puutlis B, C. I'. E. Jain recta alii|ua pro arbitrio assumU vocetur
ilx, el rerla, quae sil ail ik, ul v [td ft, vcl y, vel z) est ad XB
(vel SC, vel XI), vel XE) vocetur dv (vel d\v, vel dy, vel dz) sive
differentia ipsariim v (vel ipsarum W, vel y, vel z). His posilis,
calculi ri'jjulae crunt talcs.
Sil a qiianlilas data constans, eril da acqualis 0, cl dax eril
MMpjalb mix. Si sit y aequ. v (scu ordinala quaevis cunae YY
aequalis etiivis urdinalae respondent! curvae YV) eril dy aequ. d».
Jam Additio n Subtraclio: si sil 7— y + w + x aequ. v, eril
ih—y+w + x scu ilv aequ. dz— dy + dw + dx. MnUiflicatio : <Uv
aequ. xdv + vdx. sen |wsilo y aequ. xv. liel dy aequ. xdv + vdx.
In arbitrio enim esl vcl rurmulain ,• ill xv , vel compendia pro ea
iileram . ul y . adbiberc. Nolandum . cl \ cl dx eodem modo in
hoc calcnlo traclari. lit y cl dy, vel aliam lilcram indeterminalam
cum sua differential!. Nolandum e.iam. non dari semper regressum
a differential! Aequalionn. nisi cum quadani cautione, de quo alibi.
v v, ,±vdy:rydv
I'orro IHniiio: d T vcl (positn z aequ. -) dz aequ. ——
.
Quoad Siijun line probe nolandum, cum in calculo pro lilera
siibslilnitur simplicilcr ejus differenlialis, servari quidem eadem
si(-ua, el pro 4- z scribi + dz, pro — z scribi — dz. ut ex addi-
•) Act. Enid. Lins. an. 1084.
leibniz's first paper on the calculos (As reprinted by
C. I. Gerhardt, 1858)
^100 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
tities less than any assignable quantity and yet notzero. In the absence of rigorous definitions he presentedanalogies pointing to the relation of the radius of theearth to the distance of the fixed stars. He varied hismodes of approach to questions concerning the infinite;in one of his letters (to Foucher, 1693) he accepted theexistence of the actually infinite to overcome Zeno'sdifficulties and praised Grggoire de Saint Vincent whohad computed the place where Achilles meets the tor-toise. And just as Newton's vagueness provoked thecriticism of Berkeley, so Leibniz' vagueness provokedthe opposition of Bernard Nieuwentijt, burgomasterof Purmerend near Amsterdam (1694). Both Berkeley'sand Nieuwentijt's criticism had their justification, butthey were entirely negative. They were unable to supplya rigorous foundation to the calculus, but inspiredfurther constructive work.
Literature.
The collected works of Descartes, Pascal, Huygens(partial), and Fermat are available in modern editions,those of Leibniz in asomewhat older edition (incomplete)
.
For the discovery of the calculus see:
C. B. Boyer, The Concepts of the Calculus (London1 988), esp. Ch. IV and V. This book has a largebibliography.
On the historical—technical background:
H. Grossmann, Die gesellschnftlichen Grundlagen dermeckanistischen Philosaphie und die Manifaktur,
THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY 161
Zeitschrift fur Sozialforschung 4 (1935) pp. 161-
231.
On the leading mathematicians:
The Mathematical Works of John WaUis D.D., T.R.S.
(London, 1938).
A. Prag, John Wallis, Zur Ideengeschichle der Mathe-
matik im 17. Jahrlmndert. Quellen and Studien B'
(1930) pp. 381-412.
Abo see T. P. Nunn, Math. Gar. 5 (1910-11).
Barrow, Geometrical Lectures, transl. and ed. by J. M.Child (Chicago, 1916).
A. E. Bell, Christiaan Huygens and the Development of
Science in the Seventeenth Century (London, 1948).
L. T. More, Isaac Newton. A Biography (N. Y., London,
1934).
Principia, English ed. by F. Cajori (Un. of California,
1934).
Collections of papers on Newton have been published
by the History of Science Soc. (Baltimore, 1928); bythe Mathem. Assoc. (London, 1927); and by the Royal
Soc. (Cambridge, 1947).
J. M. Child, The Early Mathematical Manuscripts of
Leibniz, transl. from the Latin texts (Chicago,
1920).
162 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
Johann Kepler. A Tercentenary Commemoration of HisLife and Works (Baltimore, 1931).
G. Milhaud, Descartes savant (Paris, 1921).
J. E. Hofmann, Die Enluncklungsgeschichte der Leib-
nizschen Mathematik wdhrend des AufentJialtes in
Paris (1672-1676) (Munchen, 1949).
H. Bosnians (see p. 122) has papers on:
Tacquet (Isis 9, 1927-28, pp. 66-83), Steviii (Mathesis
37, 1923; Ann. Soc. Sc. Bruxclles 37, 1913, pp.171-199; Biographic nationale de Belgiquo), DeliaFaille (Mathesis 41, 1927, pp. 5-11), De SaintVincent (Mathesis 38, 1924, pp. 250-256).
O. Toeplitz, Die Entwicklung der Infinitesimalrechnung I(Berlin, 1949).
On Stevin also:
G. Sarton, Simon Stevin of Bruges, Isis 21 (1934) pp241-303.
E. J. Dyksterhuis, Simon Stevin ('s-Gravenhage, 1943).
Sec further:
Paul Tannery, Notions Historiques, in J. Tannery,Notions de math6matiques (Paris, 1903) pp. 324-348.
CHAPTER VII
The Eighteenth Century
1. Mathematical productivity in the Eighteenth Cen-
tury concentrated on the calculus and its application
to mechanics. The major figures can be arranged in a
kind of pedigree to indicate their intellectual kinship:
Leibniz—(1646-1716)
The brothers Bernoulli: Jakob (1654-1705), Johann
(1667-1748)
Euler—(1707-1783)
Lagrange—(1736-1813)
Laplace—(1749-1827)
Closely related to the work of these men was the
activity of a group of French mathematicians, notably
Clairaut, D'Alembert, and Maupertuis, who were again
connected with the philosophers of the Enlightenment.
To them must be added the Swiss mathematicians
Lambert and Daniel Bernoulli. Scientific activity usu-
ally centered around Academies, of which those at
Paris, Berlin, and St. Petersburg were outstanding. Uni-
versity teaching played a minor role or no role at all. It
was a period in which some of the leading European
countries were ruled by what has euphemistically been
called enlightened despots: Frederick the Great, Cath-
erine the Great, perhaps also Louis XV. Part of these
despots' claim to glory was their delight in having
learned men around. This delight was a type of intellec-
tual snobbery, tempered by some understanding of the
important role which natural science and applied mathe-
163
164 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
matics were taking in improving manufactures andincreasing the efficiency of the military. It is said, for
instance, that the excellence of the French navy was dueto the fact that in the construction of frigates and of
ships of the line the master shipbuilders were partly led
by mathematical theory . Euler's works abound in appli-
cations to 'juestions of importance to army and navy.
Astronomy continued to play its outstanding role as
foster-mother to mathematical research under royal andimperial protection.
2. Basle in Switzerland, a free empire city since 1263,had long been a center of learning. In the days of
Erasmus its university was already a great center. Thearts and sciences flourished in Basle, as in the cities of
Holland, under the rule of a merchant patriciate. Tothis Baale patriciate belonged the merchant family of
the Bernoullis, who had come from Antwerp in theprevious century after that city had been conqueredby the Spanish. From the late Seventeenth Centuryto the present time this family in every generation hasproduced scientists. Indeed it is difficult to find in thewhole history of science a family with a more distin-
guished record.
This record begins with two mathematicians, Jakob(James, Jacques) and Johann (John, Jean) Bernoulli.
Jakob studied theology, Johann studied medicine; butwhen Leibniz' papers in the "Acta eruditorum" ap-peared both men decided to become mathematicians.They became the first important pupils of Leibniz.In 1687 Jakob accepted the chair of mathematics atBasle University where he taught until his death in
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 165
1705. In 1697 Johann became professor at Groningen;
on his brother's death he succeeded him in his chair
at Basle where he stayed for forty-three more years.
Jakob began his correspondence with Leibniz in 1687.
Then in constant exchange of ideas with Leibniz and
with each other—often in bitter rivalry among them-
so l v0<;—the two brothers began to discover the treasures
contained in Leibniz' pioneering venture. The list of
their results is long and contains not only much of the
material now contained in our elementary texts on
differential and integral calculus but also in the inte-
gration of many ordinary differential equations. Among
Jakob's contributions arc the use of polar coordinates,
the study of the catenary (already discussed by Huygens
and others), the lemniscate (1694), and the logarithmic
spiral. In 1690 he found the so-called isochrone, pro-
posed by Leibniz in 1687 as the curve along which a
body falls with uniform velocity; it appeared to be a
-( mi-cubic parabola. Jakob also discussed isoperimetric
figures (1701), which led to a problem in the calculus of
variations. The logarithmic spiral, which has a way of
reproducing itself under various transformations (its
evolutc is a logarithmic spiral and so are both the pedal
curve and the caustic with respect to the pole), was
such a delight to Jakob that he willed that the curve
be engraved on his tombstone with the inscription
"eadem mutata resurgo." 1
Jakob Bernoulli was also one of the early students
of the theory of probabilities, on which subject he
wrote the" Ars conjectandi," published posthumously in
1 "I arise the same though changed." The spiral on the grave-
stone, however, looks like an Archimedian spiral.
166 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 167
1713. In the first part of this book Huygens' tract ongames of chance is reprinted; the other parts deal withpermutations and combinations and come to a climaxin the "theorem of Bernoulli" on binomial distributions.
"Bernoulli's numbers" appear in this book in a dis-
cussion of Pascal's triangle.
3. Johann Bernoulli's work was closely related to thatof his older brother, and it is not always easy to dis-
criminate between the results of these two men. Johannis often considered the inventor of the calculus of varia-tions because of his contribution to the problem of thebrachystochrone. This is the curve of quickest descentfor a mass point moving between two points in agravitational field, a curve studied by Leibniz and theBernoullis in 1697 and the following years. At this
time they found the equation of the geodesies on asurface.
1
The answer to the problem of the brachysto-chrone is the cycloid. This curve also solves the problemof the tautochrone, the curve along which a mass pointin a gravitational field reaches the lowest point in atime independent of its starting point. Huygens dis-covered this property of the cycloid and used it in
constructing tautochronous pendulum clocks (1673) in
which the period is independent of the amplitude.Among the other Bernoullis who have influenced the
course of mathematics are two sons of Johann : Nicolaus*
'Newton in a scholium of the "Principia" (II, Prop. 35) hadalready discussed the solid.of revolution moving in a liquid withleast resistance. He published no proof of his contention.
and above all Daniel.2
Nicolaus was called to St.
Petersburg, founded only a few years before by Czar
Peter the Great; he stayed there for a short period.
The problem in the theory of probability which he
proposed from that city is known as the "problem"
(or, more dramatically, the "paradox") of St. Peters-
burg. This son of Johann died young but the other,
Daniel, lived to a ripe age. Until 1777 he was professor
at the University of Basle. Daniel's prolific activity
was mainly devoted to astronomy, physics, and hydro-
dynamics. His"Hydrodynamica" appeared in 1738 and
one of its theorems on hydraulic pressure carries his
name. In the same year he established the kinetic
theory of gasses; with D'Alembert and Euler he studied
the theory of the vibrating string. Where his father and
uncle developed the theory of ordinary differential equa-
tions, Daniel pioneered in partial differential equations.
4. Also from Basle came the most productive mathe-
matician of the Eighteenth Century— if not of all times
—Leonard Eulor. His father studied mathematics under
Jakob Bernoulli and Leonard studied it under Johann.
Nicolaus Bernoulli
Jakob (1654-1705)
"Are conjectandi"
Johann (1667-1748)
"brachystochrone"
Nicolaus (1695-1726) Daniel (1700-1784)
"St. Petersburg problem" "hydrodynamics"
168 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 169
When in 1725 Johann's son Nicolaus travelled to St.Petersburg, young Euler followed him and stayed at theAcademy until 1741. From 1741 to 1766 Euler wasat the Berlin Academy under the special tutelage ofFrederick the Great; from 1766-1783 he was again atSt. Petersburg, now under the egis of the EmpressCatherine. He married twice and had thirteen children.The life of this Eighteenth Century academician wasalmost exclusively devoted to work in the differentfields of pure and applied mathematics. Although helost one eye in 1735 and the other eye in 1766, nothingcould interrupt his enormous productivity. The blindEuler, aided by a phenomenal memory, continued todictate his discoveries. During his life 530 books andpapers appeared; at his death he left many manuscripts,which were published by the St. Petersburg academyduring the next forty-seven years. (This brings thenumber of his works to 771, but research by GustavEnestrom has completed the list to 886.)
Euler made signal contributions in every field ofmathematics which existed in his day. He published hisresults not only in articles of varied length but also in animpressive number of large textbooks which orderedand codified the material assembled during the ages.In several fields Euler's presentation has been almostfinal. An example is our present trigonometry with its
conception of trigonometric values as ratios and itsusual notation, which dates from Euler's "Introductioin analysin infinitorum" (1748). The tremendous pres-tige of his textbooks settled for ever many moot ques-tions of notation in algebra and calculus; Lagrange,
Laplace, and Gauss knew and followed Euler in all
their works.
The "Introductio" of 1748 covers in its two volumes
a wide variety of subjects. It contains an exposition of
infinite series including those for e', sin a;, and cos x,
and presents the relation e" = cos x + i sin i (already
discovered by Johann Bernoulli and others in different
forms). Curves and surfaces are so freely investigated
with the aid of their equations that we may consider the
"Introductio" the first text on analytic geometry. We
also find here an algebraic theory of elimination. To the
most exciting parts of this book belong the chapter on
the Zeta function and its relation to the prime number
theory, as well as the chapter on partitio numerorum.1
Another great and rich textbook was Euler's" Institu-
lioncs calculi different ialis" (1755), followed by three
volumes of "Institutions calculi integralis" (1768-
1774). Here we find not only our elementary differential
and integral calculus but also a theory of differential
equations, Taylor's theorem with many applications,
Euler's "summation" formula, and the Eulerian inte-
grals T and B. The section on differential equations
with its distinction between "linear", "exact", and
"homogeneous" equations is still the model of our ele-
mentary texts on this subject.
Euler's "Mechanica, sive motus scientia analyticc
exposita" (1736) was the first textbook in which New-
ton's dynamics of the mass point was developed with
analytical methods. It was followed by the "Theoria
motus corporum solidorum seu rigidorum" (1765) in
•See the preface to the "Introductio" by A. Speiser: Euler,
Opera I, 9 (1945).
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 171
LEONARD EULER (1707-1783)
From the portrait by A. Lorgna
which the mechanics of solid bodies was similarly
treated. This textbook contains the "Eulerian" equa-
tions for a body rotating about a point. The "Voll-
staendige Anleitung zur Algebra" (1770)—written in
German and dictated to a servant—has been the model
of many later texts on algebra. It leads up to the theory
of cubic and biquadratic equations.
In 1744 appeared Euler's "Methodus inveniendi
lineas curvas maximi minim ive proprietate gauden-
tes." This was the first exposition of the calculus of
variations; it contained " Euler's equations" with many
applications, including the discovery that catenoid and
right helicoid are minimal surfaces. Many other
results of Euler can be found in his smaller papers
which contain many a gem, little known even today.
To the better known discoveries belong the theorem
connecting the number of vertices (V), edges (£), and
faces (F) of a closed polyhedron (V + F - E = 2);
the line of Euler in the triangle; the curves of constant
width (Euler called them orbiform curves); and the
constant of Euler
+ ... +1- logn) = -577216 •••
Several papers are devoted to mathematical recreations
(the seven bridges of Konigsberg, the knight's jump in
chess). Euler's contributions to the theory of numbers
alone would have given him a niche in the hall of fame,
to his discoveries in this field belongs the law of
quadratic reciprocity.
A large amount of Euler's activity was devoted to
astronomy, where the lunar theory, an important sec-
lAlready known to Descartes.
10J-104J DB QUAOTITATIBD8 TBAKSCENDENTrBOS EX C1HCOLO 0BTI3 147
Secantes autem et coaecantes ex tangentibus per solam eubtractionem
inYeniuntur; est enim
et bine
cotec. 1— coty*— eoti
sec. I— cot(45*— y*j— tang.*-.
Ex hia ergo lnculenter perspicitur, qaomodo canones ainnnm conetrai pc-
tuerint.
188. Ponatur denuo in formulis § 133 arena t infinite parvus et ait •
numeral infinite magnus i, ut ii obtineat valorem flnitum v. Erit ergo
m— v et m— j , unde ain. /— J et coa. 1 — 1; hia substantia fit
atque
ain.o —aV-i
In capita aatem praecedente vidimus eeae
denoUnte e basin logarithmorum hyperbolicorum; scripto ergo pro J partim
+ »V— 1 putim — frV— 1 erit
COS. V —
ain.« —tY-1.
Ex quibua inteUigitor, quomodo quantitates exponentiales imaginariae ad
inns et eoainus arcnum realium redueantur. ') Erit vero
1) Hu ealabarriataa formulu, quai ab intent*™ formulas Ecianatt nomioaro «olemui,
louaua diitincU primum aipoinit in CommenUtiono 61 (indicii ExnTaonuw): Be tvmmii
It'
the p^obs IN ecler's Inlroductio where e** = cos x + i sin X
18 INTRODUCED
148 TOMI PB1MI CAPUT VI11 § 138-140 [104-10*
et
t*'V-' — cos. i' + V— 1 • aiiM;
e-.f-i — cob.0 .. /_ i.«in.t).
139. Sit iam in iiadem formulia |133 » uumerua infinite parvua ten
„ — -'- existent* t nuiuero infinite magno; erit
coa ni— cos. -.- — 1 et ain. «f— ain.j — jj
arena enim evaneacentia '- sinus est ipsi aequalia, cosinus Tero — 1. Hia
positis habebitar
1_ 6»/±Ji: *•*•!>'+<«»«-y-*•***)
etf
• (eoa.« + V-I»in.»)'- (eoaf-y-l-alB.«)'
SumendiB autem logarithmis hjperbolicis aupra d 125) oBtendimua eaae
l(l+s)-i(l +*)"«'-• seu y'-l + f»y
poaito y loco.l+i. Nunc igitur poeito loco y partim coe.» + V— 1- tin.*
partim coa.a— V— 1-ain. 1 prodibit
jfrvrvm reefrroecnnn a folttinibui muiieron... MfwaKwii orfemnn. Miiealliau BorolU. T,
17*3, p. ITS) LnimAMi Ecuuu Optra omnia, aeriee I, Ml 14. Iam ulta quldaa com amioo
Cm. Gou>»ic« (1690-1764) formula hoe partiMnUa, partim iptdalat partim gtniraJiorta, ooa»-
moniatToat Bio in epiatola d. 9. Dk. 1741 acripU inienitur hue formula
it io epiitola 4. 6. Mali 1749 teripU hate
arf-t + a-'*-' - 2 Coa. Arcj-io.
Vide Corr«j»noo«t math, H j>J>ys. fkWtt por P. H.Km, SL-PeUrabourg 1848, 1 1, p. 110 ft 1fI
;
Ltcmtui £iuu Optra omnia, eeriee HI. Confer atUm Commentalionem 170 nota 1 p. 16
laodaUm, imprimii § 90 et 91. A. K.
13
174 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
tion of the three-body problem, received his special
attention. The "Theoria motus planetarum et come-tarum" (1774) is a treatise on celestial mechanics.Related to this work was Euler's study of the attraction
of ellipsoids (1738).
There are books by Euler on hydraulics, on shipconstruction, on artillery. In 1769-71 there appearedthree tomes of a "Dioptrica" with a theory of the
passage of rays through a system of lenses. In 1739appeared his new theory of music, of which it has beensaid that it was too musical for mathematicians andtoo mathematical for musicians. Euler's philosophical
exposition of the most important problems of naturalscience in his "Letters to a German Princess" (written
1760-61) remained a model of popularization.
The enormous fertility of Euler has been a continuoussource of surprise and admiration for everyone who hasattempted to study his work, a task not so difficult as it
seems, since Euler's Latin is very simple and his nota-tion is almost modern—or perhaps we should bettersay that our notation is almost Euler's! A long list canbe made of the known discoveries of which Eulerpossesses priority, and another a list of ideas which arestill worth elaborating. Great mathematicians havealways appreciated their indebtedness to Euler. "LisezEuler," Laplace used to say to younger mathema-ticians, "lisez Euler, c'est notre maitre a tous." AndGauss, more ponderously, expressed himself: "The studyof Euler's works will remain the best school for thedifferent fields of mathematics and nothing else canreplace it." Riemann knew Euler's works well and someof his most profound works have an Eulerian touch.
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 175
Publishers might do worse than offer translations of
some of Euler's works together with modern commen-
taries.
5. It is instructive to point out not only some of
Ruler's contributions to science but also some of his
weaknesses. Infinite processes were still carelessly
handled in the Eighteenth Century and much of the
work of the leading mathematicians of that period
impresses us as wildly enthusiastic experimentation.
There was experimentation with infinite series, with
infinite products, with integration, with the use of
symbols such as 0, <*,y/-\. If many of Euler's
conclusions can be accepted today, there are others
concerning which we have reservations. We accept, for
instance, Euler's statement that log n has an infinity
of values which are all complex numbers, except when
n is positive, when one of the values is real. Euler came
to this conclusion in a letter to D'Alembert (1747) who
had claimed that log (- 1) = 0. But we cannot always
follow Euler when he writes that 1-3 + 5-7 +... = 0, or when he concludes from
n + n* +n
1 -n
1 l nand l + n + J?
+ " ' " n - 1
that
...+±+ l-+l+n + n>+--- =0.
176 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Yet we must be careful and not criticize Euler too
hastily for his way of manipulating divergent series;
he simply did not always use some of our present tests
of convergence or divergence as a criterium for the
validity of his series. Much of his supposedly indiscrim-
inate work with series has been given a strictly rigorous
sense by modern mathematicians.
We cannot, however, be enthusiastic about Euler's
way of basing the calculus on the introduction of zeros
of different orders. An infinitesimally small quantity,
wrote Euler in his "Differential Calculus" of 1755, is
truly zero, a ± ndx = a,1
dx ± (da:)"*1 = dx, and
a y/dx + Cdx = a y/dx
"Therefore there exist infinite orders of infinitely small quan-tities, which, though they all = 0, still have to be well distin-
guished among themselves, if we look at their mutual relation,
which is explained by a geometrical ratio."
The whole question of the foundation of the calculus
remained a subject of debate, and so did all questions
relating to infinite processes. The "mystical" period
in the foundation of the calculus (to use a term sug-
gested by Karl Marx) itself provoked a mysticism whichoccasionally went far beyond that of the foundingfathers. Guido Grandi, a monk and professor at Pisa
known for his study of rosaces (r = sin n 9) and othercurves which resemble flowers, considered the formula
'This formula reminds us of a statement ascribed to Zeno bySimpliciua: "That which, being added to another, does not makeit greater, and being taken away from another, does not make it
lass, is nothing".
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 177
1=1-1 + 1-1 + 1
z
= (l - D + (i - D + (i - o+ ••
=0+0+0+ ••
as the symbol for Creation from Nothing. He obtained
the result 1/2 by considering the case of a father who
bequeathes a gem to his two sons who each may keep
the bauble one year in alternation. It then belongs to
each son for one half.
Euler's foundation of the calculus may have had its
weakness, but he expressed his point of view without
vagueness. D'Alembert, in some articles of the '* Ency-
clopedic," attempted to find this foundation by other
means. Newton had used the term "prime and ultimate
ratio" for the "fluxion," as the first or last ratio of two
quantities just springing into being. D'Alembert re-
placed this notion by the conception of a limit. One
quantity he called the limit of another when the second
approaches the first nearer than by any given quantity.
"The differentiation of equations consists simply in
finding the limits of the ratio of finite differences of two
variables included in the equation." This was a great
step ahead, as was D'Alembert's conception of in-
finites of different orders. However, his contemporaries
were not easily convinced of the importance of the new
step and when D'Alembert said that the secant becomes
the tangent when the two points of intersection are one,
it was felt that he had not overcome the difficulties in-
herent in Zeno's paradoxes. After all, does a variable
quantity reach its limit? or does it never reach it?
178 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
We have already referred to Bishop Berkeley's crit-
icism of Newton's fluxions. George Berkeley, first deanof Derry, after 1734 Bishop of Cloyne in S. Ireland—and from 1729 to 1731 a resident of Newport R. I.—is primarily known for his extreme idealism ("esse est
percipi"). He resented the support which Newtonianscience gave to materialism and he attacked the theoryof fluxions in the "Analyst" of 1734. He derided theinfinitesimals as "ghosts of departed quantities"; if xreceives an increment o, then the increment of x",
divided by o, is nx'-1 + n(n ~
2
l) *-* o + . . . . This
is obtained by supposing o different from zero. Thefluxion of x", nx"~', however, is obtained by taking o
as equal to zero, when the hypothesis is suddenlyshifted, since o was supposed to be different from zero.
This was the "manifest sophism," which Berkeley dis-
covered in the calculus, and he believed that its correct
results were obtained by a compensation of errors.
Fluxions were logically unaccountable. "But he Whocan digest a second or . ird Fluxion, a second or third
Difference," Berkeley exclaimed to the "infidel mathe-matician" whom he addressed (Halley), "need not,.tne-
thinks, be squeamish about any Point in Divinity."
It has not been the only case in which a critical difficulty
in a science has been used to strengthen an idealist
philosophy.
John Landen, a self-taught British mathematicianwhose name is preserved in the theory of elliptic inte-
grals, tried to overcome the basic difficulties in thecalculus in his own way. In the "Residual analysis"
(1764) he met Berkeley's criticism by avoiding infini-
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 179
tesimals altogether; the derivative of x\ for instance,
was found by changing x into x, ,after which
=LzlI = x\ + Xx, + x*
X\ — x
becomes 3** when x = x, . Since this procedure involves
infinite series when the functions are more complicated,
Landen's method has some affinity to the later alge-
braic" method of Lagrange.
6 Although Euler was incontestably the leading
mathematician of this period, France continued to pro-
duce work of great originality. Here, more than in any
other country, mathematics was conceived as the science
which was to bring Newton's theory to greater per-
fection. The theory of universal gravitation had great
attraction for the philosophers of the Enlightenment,
who used it as a weapon in their struggle against the
remnants of feudalism. The Catholic Church had placed
Descartes on the index in 1664, but by 1700 his theories
had become fashionable even in conservative circles.
The question of Newtonianism versus CartesianiBm be-
came for a while a topic of the greatest interest not only
in learned circles but also in the salons. Voltaire s
"Lettres sur les Anglais" (1734) did much to introduce
Newton to the French reading public; Voltaire s friend
Mme. Du Chatelet even translated the " Principia" into
French (1759). A particular point of contention be-
tween the two schools was the figure of the earth. In
the cosmogony favored by the Cartesians the earth
elongated at the poles; Newton's theory required that
it be flattened. The Cartesian astronomers Cassini (Jean
180 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 181
Dominique the father and Jacques the son; the fatherknown in geometry because of "Cassini's oval," 1680)had measured an arc of the meridian in France between1700 and 1720 and vindicated the Cartesian conclusion.A controversy arose in which many mathematiciansparticipated. An expedition was sent in 1735 to Peru,followed in 1736-37 by one under the direction of PierreDe Maupertuis to the Tornea in Lapland in order tomeasure a degree of longitude. The result of both ex-peditions was a triumph for Newton's theory, as wellas for Maupertuis himself. The now famous "grandaplatisseur" ("grand flattener") became president ofthe Berlin Academy and basked for many years in thesun of his fame at the court of Frederick the Great.This lasted until 1750 when he entered into a spiritedcontroversy with the Swiss mathematician SamuelKonig concerning the principle of least action inmechanics, perhaps already indicated by Leibniz. Mau-pertuis was looking, as Fermat had done before andEinstein has done after him, for some general principleby which the laws of the universe could be unified.Maupertuis' formulation was not clear, but he definedas his "action" the quantity mvs (m = mass, v » ve-locity, s - distance) ; he combined with it a proof ofthe existence of God. The controversy was brought toa climax when Voltaire lampooned the unhappy presi-dent in the "Diatribe du docteur Akakia, M^decin dupape" (1752). Neither the king's support nor Euler'sdefense could bring succor to Maupertuis' sunkenspirits, and the deflated mathematician died not longafterwards in Basle in the home of the Bernoullis.
Euler restated the principle of least action in the
form that / mvds must be a minimum; moreover he did
not indulge in Maupertuis' metaphysics. This placed
the principle on a sound basis, where it was used by
Lagrange1
and later by Hamilton. The use of the
"Hamiltonian" in modern mathematical physics illus-
trates the fundamental character of Euler's contribu-
tion to the Maupertuis-Konig controversy.
Among the mathematicians who went with Mauper-
tuis to Lapland was Alexis Claude Clairaut. Clairaut, at
eighteen years of age, had published the "Recherches
sur les courbes a double courbure," a first attempt to
deal with the analytical and differential geometry of
space curves. On his return from Lapland Clairaut
published his "Theorie de la figure de la tcrre" (1743),
a standard work on the equilibrium of fluids and the
attraction of ellipsoids of revolution. Laplace could only
improve on it in minor details. Among its many results
is the condition that a differential Mdx + Ndy be exact.
This book was followed by the "Theorie de la lune"
(1752), which added material to Euler's theory of the
moon's motion and the problem of three bodies in
general. Clairaut also contributed to the theory of line
integrals and of differential equations; one of the types
which he considered is known as Clairaut's equation
and offered one of the first known examples of a singular
solution.
7. The intellectual opposition to the "ancien regime"
centered after 1750 around the famous "Encyclop6die,"
'See E. Mach, The Science of Mechanics (Chicago, 1893), p.
364.
182 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
28 vols. (1751-1772). The editor was Denis Diderot,
under whose leadership the Encyclopedia presented a
detailed philosophy of the Enlightenment. Diderot's
knowledge of mathematics was not inconsiderable', but
the leading mathematician of the Encyclopedists was
Jean Le Rond D'Alembert, the natural son of an aristo-
cratic lady, left as a foundling near the church of
St. Jean Le Rond in Paris. His early brilliance facilitated
his career; in 1754 he became "secretaire perpetuel" of
the French Academy and as such the most influential
man of science in France. In 1743 appeared his "Traits
de dynamique" which contains the method of reducing
the dynamics of solid bodies to statics, known as
"D'Alembert's principle." He continued to write on
many applied subjects, especially on hydrodynamics,
lThere exists a widely quoted story about Diderot and Euler
according to which Euler, in a public debate in St. Petersburg,
succeeded in embarrassing the freethinking Diderot by claiming
to possess an algebraic demonstration of the existence of God:
"Sir, (o + 6")/n - x; hence God exists, answer please!" This is
a good example of a bad historical anecdote, since the value of an
anecdote about an historical person lies in its faculty to illustrate
certain aspects of his character; this particular anecdote serves
to obscure both the character of Diderot and of Euler. Diderot
knew his mathematics and had written on involutes and prob-
ability, and no reason exists to think that the thoughtful Euler
would have behaved in the asinine way indicated. The story seems
to have been made up by the English mathematician De Morgan
(1806-73). See L. G. Krakeur—R. L. Krueger, Isis 31(1940)
431-432; also 33 (1941) 219-231. It is true that there was in the
Eighteenth Century occasional talk about the possibility of an
algebraic demonstration of the existence of God; Maupertuis
indulged in one, see Voltaire's "Diatribe". Oeuvres 41 (1821 ed.)
pp. 19, 30. See also B. Brown, Am. Math. Monthly 49 (1944).
JEAN LE ROND D'ALEMBERT (1717-17S3)
184 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
aerodynamics, and the three-body problem. In 1747
appeared his theory of vibrating strings which made
him together with Daniel Bernoulli the founder of the
theory of partial differential equations. Where D'Alem-
bert and Euler solved the equation z lt = fc
2z„ by means
of the expression z = f(x + kt) + <p(x — kt), Bernoulli
solved it by means of a trigonometric series. There
remained grave doubts concerning the nature of this
solution; D'Alembert believed that the initial form of
the string could only be given by a single analytical
expression, while Euler thought that "any" continuous
curve would do. Bernoulli believed, contrary to Euler,
that his series solution was perfectly general. The full
explanation of the problem had to wait until 1824 when
Fourier removed the doubts concerning the validity of
a trigonometric series as the representation of "any"
function.
D'Alembert was a facile writer on many subjects,
including even fundamental questions in mathematics.
We mentioned his introduction of the limit conception.
The "fundamental" theorem in algebra is sometimes
called D'Alembert's theorem because of his attempt at
proof (1746) ; and D'Alembert's "paradox" in the theory
of probability shows that he also thought about the
foundations of this theory—if not always very success-
fully.
The theory of probabilities made rapid advances in
this period, mainly by further elaboration of the ideas
of Fermat, Pascal, and Huygens. The "Ars conjec-
tandi" was followed by several other texts, among them
"The Doctrine of Chances" (1716) written by AbrahamDe Moivre, a French Huguenot who settled in London
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 185
after the revocation of the Edict of Nantes (1685) and
earned a living by private tutoring. De Moivre's name
is attached to a theorem in trigonometry, which in
its present form (cos <p + i sin ip)° = cos nip + i sin n-p
appears first in Euler's " Introductio." In a paper pub-
lished in 1733 he derived the normal probability func-
tion as an approximation to the binomial law and gave
a formula equivalent to that of Stirling. James Stirling,
an English mathematician of the Newtonian school,
published his series in 1730.
The many lotteries and insurance companies which
were organized in this period interested many mathe-
maticians, including Euler, in the theory of probabilities.
It led to attempts to apply the doctrine of chances to
new fields. The Comte De Buffon, noted as the author
of a natural history in 36 delightful volumes and the
famous discourse on style (1753 : "le style est de l'homme
mfime") introduced in 1777 the first example of a geo-
metrical probability. This was the so-called needle
problem which has appealed to the imagination of manypeople because it allows the "experimental" determina-
tion of t by throwing a needle on a plane covered with
parallel and equidistant lines and counting the number
of times the needle hits a line.
To this period belong also the attempts to apply the
theory of probability to man's judgment; for instance,
by computing the chance that a tribunal can arrive
at a true verdict if to each of the different witnesses
a number can be given expressing the chance that he
will speak the truth. This curious " probability des juge-
ments," with its distinct flavor of Enlightenment philos-
ophy, was prominent in the work of the Marquis De
186 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Condorcet; it reappeared in Laplace and even in Poisson
(1837).
8. De Moivre, Stirling, and Landen were good repre-
sentatives of English Eighteenth Century mathema-
ticians. We must report on a few more, though none of
them reached the height of their continental colleagues.
The tradition of the venerated Newton rested heavily
upon English science and the clumsiness of his notation
as compared to that of Leibniz made progress difficult.
There were deep-lying social reasons why English math-
ematicians refused to be emancipated from Newtonian
fluxional methods. England was in constant commercial
wars with France and developed a feeling of intellectual
superiority which was fostered not only by its victories
in war and trade but also by the admiration in which the
continental philosophers held its political system. Eng-
land became the victim of its own supposed excellence.
An analogy exists between the mathematics of Eight-
eenth Century England and of late Alexandrian an-
tiquity. In both cases progress was technically impeded
by an inadequate notation, but reasons for the self-
satisfaction of the mathematicians were of a deeper
lying social nature.
The leading English—or, rather, English speaking
—
mathematician of this period was Colin Maclaurin,
professor at the University of Edinburgh, a disciple of
Newton with whom he was personally acquainted. His
study and extension of fluxional methods, of curves
of second and higher order, and of the attraction of
ellipsoids run parallel with contemporary efforts of
Clairaut and Euler. Several of Maclaurin's theorems
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 187
occupy a place in our theory of plane curves and our
projective geometry. In his "Geometria organica"
(1720) we find the observation known as Cramer's
paradox that a curve of the nth order is not always
determined by 1/2 n (n + 3) points, so that nine points
may not uniquely determine a cubic while ten would
be too many. Here we also find cinematical methods to
describe plane curves of different degrees. Maclaurin's
"Treatise of Fluxions" (2 vols., 1742)—written to de-
fend Newton against Berkeley—is difficult to read be-
cause of the antiquated geometrical language, which is
in sharp contrast with the ease of Euler's writing. Mac-
laurin used to obtain Archimedian rigor. The book con-
tains Maclaurin's investigations on the attraction of
ellipsoids of revolution and his theorem that two such
ellipsoids, if they are confocal, attract a particle on the
axis or in the equator with forces proportional to their
volumes. In this "Treatise" Maclaurin also deals with
the famous "series of Maclaurin."
This series, however, was no new discovery, since it
had appeared in the"Methodus incrementorum" (1715)
written by Brook Taylor, for a while secretary of the
Royal Society. Maclaurin fully acknowledged his debt
to Taylor. The series of Taylor is now always given in
Lagrange's notation
:
fix + h) = f(x) + h /'(*) + £ fix)+ ;
Taylor explicitly mentions the series for x = 0, which
many college texts still insist on naming "Maclaurin's
series." Taylor's derivation did not include convergence
considerations, but Maclaurin made a beginning with
188 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
such considerations—he even had the so-called integral
test for infinite series. The full importance of Taylor's
series was not recognized until Euler applied it in his
differential calculus (1755). Lagrange supplied it with
the remainder and used it as the foundation of his theory
of functions. Taylor himself used his series for the
integration of some differential equations.
10. Joseph Louis Lagrange was born in Turin of
Italian-French ancestry. At nineteen years of age he
became professor of mathematics in the artillery school
of Turin (1755). In 1766, when Euler left Berlin for
St. Petersburg, Frederick the Great invited Lagrange
to come to Berlin, accompanying his invitation with a
modest message which said that "it is necessary that
the greatest geometer of Europe should live near the
greatest of kings." Lagrange stayed at Berlin until the
death of Frederick (1786) after which he went to Paris.
During the Revolution he assisted in reforming weights
and measures; later he became professor, first at the
Ecole Normale (1795), then at the Ecole Polytechnique
(1797).
To Lagrange's earliest works belong his contributions
to the calculus of variations. Euler's memoir on this
subject had appeared in 1755. Lagrange observed that
Euler's method had "not all the simplicity which is
desirable in a'subject of pure analysis." The result was
Lagrange's purely analytical calculus of variations
(1760-61), which is not only full of original discoveries
but also has the historical material well arranged and
assimilated—something quite typical of all Lagrange's
work. Lagrange immediately applied his theory to prob-
JOSKI'll LOUIS LAGRANGB (1736-1813)
14
190 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
lems of dynamics, in which he made full use of Euler's
formulation of the principle of least action, the result
of the lamentable "Akakia" episode. Many of the
essential ideas of the " M6caniquc analytique" thus date
back to Lagrange's Turin days. He also contributed to
one of the standard problems of his day, the theory of
the moon. He gave the first particular solutions of the
three-body problem. The theorem of Lagrange states
that it is possible to start three finite bodies in such a
manner that their orbits are similar ellipses all described
in the same time (1772). In 1767 appeared his memoir
"Sur la resolution des Equations numeViqucs" in which
he presented methods of separating the real roots of an
algebraic equation and of approximating them by means
of continued fractions. This was followed in 1770 by
the "Reflexions sur la resolution algebrique des Equa-
tions" which dealt with the fundamental question of
why the methods useful to solve equations of degree
n :£ 4 are not successful for n > 4. This led Lagrange
to rational functions of the roots and their behavior
under the permutations of the roots; the procedure
which not only stimulated Ruffini and Abel in their
work on the case n > 4, but also led Galois to his theory
of groups. Lagrange also made progress in the theory
of numbers when he investigated quadratic residues and
proved, among many other theorems, that every integer
is the sum of four or less than four squares.
Lagrange devoted the second part of his life to the
composition of his great works, the "MEcanique ana-
lytique" (1788), the "Theorie des fonctions analytiques"
(1797), and its sequel, the "Lccons sur le calcul des
fonctions" (1801). The two books on functions were
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTHRY 191
an attempt to give a solid foundation to the calculus
by reducing it to algebra. Lagrange rejected the theory
of limits as indicated by Newton and formulated by
D'Alembert. He could not well understand what hap-
pened when Ay/Ax. reaches its limit. In the words of
Lazarc Carnot, the "organisateur de la victoire" in the
French Revolution, who also worried about Newton's
method of infinitesimals:
"That method has the great inconvenience of considering
quantities in the state in which they cease, so to speak, to be
quantities; for though we can always well conceive the ratio of
two quantities, as long as they remain finite, that ratio offers to
the mind no clear and precise idea, as soon as its terms Income,
the one and the other, nothing at the same time- '
1.
Lagrange's method was different from that of his
predecessors. He started with Taylor's series, which he
derived with their remainder, showing in a rather naive
way that "any" function f(x) could be developed in
such a scries with the aid of a purely algebraic process.
Then the derivatives /'(x), f"(x), etc., were defined as
the coefficients h, h3, in the Taylor expansion of
f(x + h) in terms of h. (The notation f'{x), f"(x) is
due to Lagrange.)
Though this "algebraic" method of founding the
calculus turned out to be unsatisfactory and though
Lagrange gave insufficient attention to the convergence
of the scries, the abstract treatment of a function was a
considerable step ahead. Here appeared a first "theory
«L. Carnot, Reflexions sur la metaphysique du calcul infinitesi-
mal (5th ed.. Paris, 1881), p. 147, quoted by F. Cajori, Am. Math.
Monthly 22 (1915), p. 148.
192 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
of functions of a real variable" with applications to alarge variety of problems in algebra and geometry.
Lagrange's "Mecanique analytique" is perhaps his
most valuable work and still amply repays careful
study. In his book, which appeared a hundred years
after Newton's "Principia," the full power of the newly
developed analysis was applied to the mechanics of
points and of rigid bodies. The results of Eulcr, of D'Alembert, and of the other mathematicians of the
Eighteenth Century were assimilated and further de-
veloped from a consistent point of view. Full use of
Lagrange's own calculus of variations made the unifica-
tion of the varied principles of statistics and dynamicspossible—in statistics by the use of the principle of
virtual velocities, in dynamics by the use of D'Alem-bert's principle. This led naturally to generalized coor-
dinates and to the equation of motion in their " Lagran-
gian" form:
_d ar _ ar =
Newton's geometrical approach was now fully dis-
carded; Lagrange's book was a triumph of pure analysis.
The author went so far as to stress in the preface:
"on ne trouvera point de figures dans cet ouvrage,
seulement des op6rations alggbriques."' It characterized
Lagrange as the first true analyst.
11. With Pierre Simon Laplace we reach the last of
'"No figures will be found in this work, only algebraic opera-
tions." The word "algebraic" instead of "analytic" is charac-
teristic.
PIERRE SIMON LAPLACE (1749-1827)
194 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
the leading Eighteenth Century mathematicians. Theson of a small Normandy proprietor, he attended
classes at Beaumont and Caen, and through the aid of
D'Alembcrt became professor of mathematics at the
military school of Paris. He had several other teaching
and administrative positions and took part during the
Revolution in the organization of the Ecole Normale as
well as of the Ecole Polytcchnique. Napoleon bestowed
many honors upon him, but so did Louis XVIII. In
contrast to Monge and Carnot, Laplace easily shifted
his political allegiances and with it all was somewhat of
a snob; but this easy conscience enabled him to con-
tinue his purely mathematical activity despite all
political changes in France.
The two great works of Laplace which unify not only
his own investigations but all previous work in their
respective subjects are the "Thcorie analytique des
probabiliteV' (1812) and the "Mdcanique celeste" (5
vols., 1799-1825). Both monumental works were pre-
faced by extensive expositions in non-technical terms,
the "Essai philosophique sur les probability" (1814)
and the "Exposition cm systemc du monde" (179G).
This "exposition" contains the nebular hypothesis, in-
dependently proposed by Kant in 1755 (and even before
Kant by Swedenborg in 1734). The "M6caniqueceleste" itself was the culmination of the work of New-ton, Clairaut, D'Alembcrt, Eulcr, Lagrange, and La-
place on the figure of the earth, the theory of the moon,the three body problem, and the perturbations of the
planets, leading up to the momentous problem of the
stability of the solar system. The name "Laplace's
equation"
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 195
d7V , d
7V , d*V
dx3 + W +
dz2 =
reminds us that potential theory is part of the "M6ca-
nique celeste." (The equation itself already had been
found by Euler in 1752 when he derived some of the
principal equations of hydrodynamics.) Around this five
tome opus cluster many anecdotes. Well-known is La-
place's supposed answer to Napoleon who tried to
tease him by the remark that God was not mentioned
in his book, "Sire, je n'avais pas besoin de cctte hy-
pothese."1 And Nathaniel Bowditch of Boston who
translated four volumes of Laplace's work into English
has remarked: "I never came across one of Laplace's
'Thus it plainly appears' without feeling sure that I
have hours of hard work before me to fill up the chasm
and find out and show how it plainly appears." Hamil-
ton's mathematical career began by finding a mistake in
Laplace's "Mexanique celeste." Green, reading Laplace,
received the idea of a mathematical theory of electricity.
The "Essai philosophique sur les probabilites" is a
very readable introduction to the theory of probabil-
ities; it contains Laplace's"negative" definition of prob-
abilities by postulating "equally likely events":
"The theory of chance consists in the reduction of all events of
the same kind to a certain number of equally likely cases, that are
cases such that we are equally undecided about their existence,
and to determine the number of cases which arc favorable to the
event of which we seek the probability."
Questions concerning probability appear, according
"'Sire, I did not need this hypothesis."
196 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
to Laplace, because we are partly ignorant and partly
knowing. This led Laplace to his famous statementwhich summarizes the Eighteenth Century interpreta-
tion of mechanical materialism
:
"An intelligence which, for a given instant, knew all the forces
by which nature is animated and the respective position of thebeings which compose it , and which besides was large enough to
submit these data to analysis, would embrace in the same formulathe motions of the largest bodies of the universe and those of the
lightest atom: nothing would be uncertain to it, and the future
as well as the past would be present to its eyes. Human mindoffers a feeble sketch of this intelligence in the perfection whichit has been able to give to Astronomy."
The standard text itself is so full of material that
many later day discoveries in the theory of probabilities
can already be found in Laplace.1 The stately tome
contains an extensive discussion of games of chanceand of geometrical probabilities, of Bernoulli's theoremand of its relation to the normal integral, and of thetheory of least squares invented by Legcndre. The lead-
ing idea is the use of the "Fonctions generatrices," of
which Laplace shows the power for the solution of
difference equations. It is here that the "Laplace trans-
form" is introduced, which later became the key to the
Heavisidc operational calculus. Laplace also rescuedfrom oblivion and reformulated a theory sketched byThomas Baycs, an obscure English clergyman, whichwas posthumously published in 1763-64. This theory
became known as the theory of inverse probabilities.
E. C. Molina, The Theory of Probability: Some comments onLaplace's Thiorie analytique, Bull. Am. Math. Soc. 36 (1930)
pp. 369-392.
,ii:an ktiknxk mostivi.a (1725-1799)
198 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
12. It is a curious fact that toward the end of thecentury some of the leading mathematicians expressedthe feeling that the field of mathematics was somehowexhausted. The laborious efforts of Euler, Lagrange,D'Alembert, and others had already led to the mostimportant theorems; the great standard texts had placedthem, or would soon place them, in their proper setting;
the few mathematicians of the next generation wouldonly find minor problems to solve. "Ne vous scmble-t-il
pas que la haute geometric va un pcu k decadence?"wrote Lagrange to D'Alembert in 1772. "Elle n'a d'
autre soutien que vous et M. Euler.'" Lagrange evendiscontinued working in mathematics for a while. D'Alcmbert had little hope to give. Arago, in his " Eloge of
Laplace" (1842) later expressed a sentiment which mayhelp us to understand this feeling:
"Five geometers—Clairaut, Euler, D'Alembert, Lagrango andLaplace—shared among them the world of which Newton hadrevealed the existence. They explored it in all directions, pene-trated into regions believed inaccessible, pointed out countlessphenomena in those regions which observation had not yet de-tected, and finally—and herein lies their imperishable glory
—
they brought within the domain of a single principle, a uniquelaw, all that is most subtle and mysterious in the motions of thecelestial bodies. Geometry also had the boldness to dispose ofthe future; when the centuries unroll themselves they will scru-pulously ratify the decisions of science."
Arago's oratory points to the main source of this
'"Does it not seem to you that the sublime geometry tends tobecome a little decadent? She has no other support than you andMr. Euler." "Geometry" in Eighteenth Century French is usedfor mathematics in general.
THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY 199
"fin de siecle" pessimism, which consisted of the tend-
ency to identify the progress of mathematics too much
with that of mechanics and astronomy. From the times
of ancient Babylon until those of Euler and Laplace
astronomy had guided and inspired the most sublime
discoveries in mathematics; now this development
seemed to have reached its climax. However, a new
generation, inspired by the new perspectives opened by
the French Revolution and the flowering of the natural
sciences, was to show how unfounded this pessimism
was. This great new impulse came only in part from
France; it also came, as often in the history of civiliza-
tion, from the periphery of the political and economical
centers, in this case from Gauss in Gottingon.
Literature.
The works of Lagrange and Laplace are available in
modern editions, those of Euler only in part.
J. H. Lambert, Opera malhemalica I, Zurich, 1946.
Pp. ix-xxxi preface by A. Speiser.
F. Cajori, .4 History of the Conception of Limits and
Fluxions in Great Brilmn from Newton to Wood-
kouse (London, 1919).
P. E. B. Jourdain, The Principle of Least Action
(Chicago, 1913).
L. G. DuPasquier, Leonard Euler et ses amis (Paris,
1927).
II. Andoyer, L'oeuvre scientifique de Laplace (Paris,
1922).
200 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
G. Loria, Nel secondo centenario della nascita di G. L.
Lagrange, Isis 28 (1938) pp. 366-375 (with full
bibliography).
H. Auchter. Brook Taylor der Mathetttatiker und Philo-
soph (Marburg, 1937).
This book shows from data in Leibniz' manuscripts that Leibniz
had the Taylor series by 1694.
H. G. Green—PI. J. J. Winter, John Louden, F. R. S.
(1719-90), Mathematician, Isis 35 (1944) pp. 6-10.
[Th. Bayes], Facsimile of Two Papers, with commen-taries by E. C. Molina and W. E. Deming (Wash-ington, D. C., 1940).
K. Pearson, Laplace, Biometrica 21 (1929) pp. 202-216.
CHAPTER VIII
The Nineteenth Century
1. The French Revolution and the Napoleonic period
created extremely favorable conditions for the further
growth of mathematics. The way was open for the In-
dustrial Revolution on the continent of Europe. It
stimulated the cultivation of the physical sciences; it
created new social classes with a new outlook on life,
interested in science and in technical education. The
democratic ideas invaded academic life; criticism rose
against antiquated forms of thinking; schools and uni-
versities had to be reformed and rejuvenated.
The new and turbulent mathematical productivity
was not primarily due to the technical problems raised
by the new industries. England, the heart of the in-
dustrial revolution, remained mathematically sterile for
several decades. Mathematics progressed most healthily
in France and somewhat later in Germany, countries
in which the ideological break with the past was most
sharply felt and where sweeping changes were made, or
had to be made, to prepare the ground for the new
capitalist economic and political structure. The new
mathematical research gradually emancipated itself
from the ancient tendency to see in mechanics and
astronomy the final goal of the exact sciences. The
pursuit of science as a whole became even more de-
tached from the demands of economic life or of warfare.
The specialist developed, interested in science for its
own sake. The connection with practice was never
201
202 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
entirely broken but it often became obscured. A division
between "pure" and "applied" mathematics accom-
panied the growth of specialization.1
The mathematicians of the Nineteenth Century were
no longer found around royal courts or in the salons
of the aristocracy. Their chief occupation consisted no
longer in membership in a learned academy; they were
usually employed by universities or technical schools
and were teachers as well as investigators. The Bcr-
noullis, Lagrange, and Laplace had done occasional
teaching. Now the teaching responsibility increased;
mathematics professors became educators and exam-
iners of the youth. The internationalism of previous
centuries tended to be undermined by the growing
relationship between the scientists of each nation,
The difference in approach found its classical expression in the
remark by Jacobi on the opinions of Fourier, who still represented
the utilitarian approach of the Eighteenth Century: "II est vrai
que Monsieur Fourier avait l'opinion que le but principal des
mathematiques 6tait l'utilite publique et l'explication des phe-
nomencs naturels; mais un philosophe comme lui aurait du
savoir que le but unique de la science, e'est l'honncur dc I'csprit
humain, ct que sous ce litre une question de nombre vaut autant
qii'tine question du systemc du monde." ("It is true that Mr.
Fourier believed that the main end of mathematics was public
usefulness and the explanation of the phenomena in nature, but
such a philosopher as he was should have known that the sole
end of science is the honor of the human mind, and that from
this point of view a question concerning number is as important
as a question concerning the system of the world.") In a letter to
Legendre 1830, Werke I p. 454 Gauss represented a synthesis
of both opinions; he freely applied mathematics to astronomy,
physics, and geodesy, but considered at the same time mathe-
matics the queen of the sciences, and arithmetic the queen of
mathematics.
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 203
though international exchange of opinion did remain.
Scientific Latin was gradually replaced by the national
languages. Mathematicians began to work in specialized
fields; and while Leibniz, Euler, D'Alembert can be
described as "mathematicians" (as " geometres" in the
Eighteenth Century meaning of the word), we think of
Cauchy as an analyst, of Cayley as an algebrist, of
Steiner as a geometer (even a " pure" geometer) and of
Cantor as a pioneer in point sets. The time was ripe for
"mathematical physicists" followed by men learned in
"mathematical statistics" or "mathematical logic".
Specialization was only broken on the highest level of
genius; and it was from the works of a Gauss, a
Riemann, a Klein, a Poincare' that Nineteenth Century
mathematics received its most powerful impetus.
2. On the dividing line between Eighteenth and
Nineteenth Century mathematics towers the majestic
figure of Carl Friedrich Gauss. He was born in the
German city of Brunswick, the son of a day laborer. The
duke of Brunswick gracefully recognized in young Gauss
an infant prodigy and took charge of his education. The
young genius studied from 1795-98 at Gottingen and in
1799 obtained his doctor's degree at Helmstadt. From
1807 until his death in 1855 he worked quietly and
undisturbed as the director of the astronomical observa-
tory and professor at the university of his alma mater.
His comparative isolation, his grasp of "applied" as well
as "pure" mathematics, his preoccupation with astron-
omy and his frequent use of Latin have the touch of the
Eighteenth Century, but his work breathes the spirit
of a new period. He stood, with his contemporaries
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 20.r)
Courtesy of Scripin Mnr
CA BX. FIMEDKICH GAUSS (1777-1855)
Kant, Goethe, Beethoven, and Hegel, on the side lines
of a great political struggle raging in other countries,
but expressed in his own field the new ideas of his age
in a most powerful way.
Gauss' diaries show that already in his seventeenth
year he began to make startling discoveries. In 1795,
for instance, he discovered independently of Euler the
law of quadratic reciprocity in number theory. Some of
his early discoveries were published in his Helmstadt
dissertation of 1799 and in the impressive " Disquisi-
tiones arithmeticae" of 1801. The dissertation gave the
first rigorous proof of the so-called fundamental theorem
of algebra, the theorem that every algebraic equation
with real coefficients has at least one root and hence
has n roots. The theorem itself goes back to Albert
Girard, the editor of Stevin's works ("Invention nou-
velle en algebrc", 1629), D'Alembert had tried to give
a proof in 1746. Gauss loved this theorem and later
gave two more demonstrations, returning in 1846 to
his first proof. The third demonstration (1816) used
complex integrals and showed Gauss' early mastery of
the theory of complex numbers.
The " Disquisit iones arithmeticae" collected all the
masterful work in number theory of Gauss' predecessors
and enriched it to such an extent that the beginning of
modern number theory is sometimes dated from the
publication of this book. Its core is the theory of
quadratic congruences, forms, and residues; it culmi-
nates in the law of quadratic residues, that "theorema
aureum" of which Gauss gave the first complete proof.
Gauss was as fascinated by this theorem as by the
fundamental theorem of algebra and later published five
15
206 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
more demonstrations; one more was found after his
death among his papers. The " Disquisitiones" also con-
tain Gauss' studies on the division of the circle, in other
words, on the roots of the equation x" = 1 . They led upto the remarkable theorem that the sides of the regular
polygon of 17 sides (more general, of n sides, n =2" + 1, j> = 2", n prime, k = 0, 1, 2, 3 • • •) can be con-
structed with compass and ruler alone, a striking ex-
tension of the Greek type of geometry.
Gauss' interest in astronomy was aroused when, onthe first day of the new century, on Jan. 1, 1801,
Piazzj in Palermo discovered the first planetoid, which
was given the name of Ceres. Since only a few observa-
tions of the new planetoid could be made the problem
arose to compute the orbit of a planet from a smaller
number of observations. Gauss solved the problem com-
pletely; it leads to an equation of degree eight. When in
1802, Pallas, another planetoid, was discovered, Gaussbegan to interest himself in the secular perturbations of
planets. This led to the "Theoria motus corporumcoelestium" (1809), to his paper on the attraction of
general ellipsoids (1813), to his work on mechanical
quadrature (1814), and to his study of secular perturba-
tions (1818). To this period belongs also Gauss' paper
on the hypergeometric series (1812), which allows a
discussion of a large number of functions from a single
point of view. It is the first systematic investigation of
the convergence of a series.
After 1820 Gauss began to be actively interested in
geodesy. Here he combined extensive applied work in
triangulation with his theoretical research. One of the
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 207
results was his exposition of the method of least squares
(1821, 1823), already the subject of investigation by
Legcndrc (1806) and Laplace. Perhaps the most im-
portant contribution of this period in Gauss' life was the
surface theory of the "Disquisitiones generales circa
superficies curvas" (1827), which approached its sub-
ject in a way strikingly different from that of Mongc.
Here again practical considerations, now in the field
of higher geodesy, were intimately connected with subtle
theoretical analysis. In this publication appeared the
so-called intrinsic geometry of a surface, in which
curvilinear coordinates arc used to express the linear
element ds in a quadratic differential form ds3 =
Edit? + Fdu dv -f Gdv3. There was also a climax, the
"thcorema egregium", which states that the total curva-
ture of the surface depends only on E, F, and G and
their derivatives, and thus is a bending invariant. But
Gauss did not neglect his first love, the "queen of
mathematics," even in this period of concentrated
activity on problems of geodesy, for in 1825 and 1831
appeared his work on biquadratic residues. It was a
continuation of his theory of quadratic residues in the
"Disquisitiones arithmcticae," but a continuation with
the aid of a new method, the theory of complex numbers.
The treatise of 1831 did not only give an algebra of
complex numbers, but also an arithmetic. A new prime
number theory appeared, in which 3 remains prime but
5 = (1 + 2t) (1 - 2i) is no longe a prime. This new
complex number theory clarified many dark points in
arithmetic so that the quadratic law of reciprocity
became simpler than in real numbers. In this paper
208 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Gauss dispelled forever the mystery which still sur-
rounded complex numbers by his representation of themby points in a plane.
1
A statue in Gottingen represents Gauss and his
younger colleague Wilhelm Weber in the process of
inventing the electric telegraph. This happened in 1833-
34 at a time when Gauss' attention began to be drawntoward physics. In this period he did much experimental
work on terrestrial magnetism. But he also found time
for a theoretical contribution of the first importance
—
his "Allgemcine Lehrsatze" on the theory of forces
acting inversely proportional to the square of the
distance (1839, 1840). This was the beginning of po-
tential theory as a separate branch of mathematics(Green's paper in 1828 was practically unknown at that
time) and it led to certain minimal principles concerning
space integrals, in which we recognize "Dirichlet's"
principle. For Gauss the existence of a minimum wasevident; this later became a much debated question
which was finally solved by Hilbert.
Gauss remained active until his death in 1855. In
his later years he concentrated more and more onapplied mathematics. His publications, however, dcnot give an adequate picture of his full greatness. Theappearance of his diaries and of some of his letters has
shown that he kept some of his most penetrating
thoughts to himself. We now know that Gauss, as
early as 1800, had discovered elliptic functions andaround 1816 was in possession of non-euclidean geo-
'Comp. E. T. Bell, Gauss and the Early Development of Algebraic
Numbers, National Math. Magazine 18 (1944) pp. 188, 219.
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 209
metry. He never published anything on these subjects;
indeed, only in some letters to friends did he disclose
his critical position toward attempts to prove Euclid's
parallel axiom. Gauss seems to have been unwilling
to venture publicly into any controversial subject. In
letters he wrote about the wasps who would then fly
around his ears and of the "shouts of the Boeotians"
that would be heard if his secrets were not kept. For
himself Gauss doubted the validity of the accepted
Kantian doctrine that space conception is euclidean a
priori ; for him the real geometry of space was a physical
fact to be discovered by experiment.
4. In his history of mathematics of the Nineteenth
Century Felix Klein has invited comparison between
Gauss and the twenty-five year older French mathema-
li.'ian Adrien Marie Legcndre. It is perhaps not en-
tirely fair to compare Gauss with any mathematician
except the very greatest; but this particular comparison
showshow Gauss' ideas were" in the air," since Legendre
in his own independent way worked on most subjects
which occupied Gauss. legendre taught from 1775 to
1780 at the military school in Paris and later filled
different government positions such as professor at the
Ecole Normalc, examiner at the Ecole Polytechnique,
and geodetic surveyor.
Like Gauss he did fundamental work on number
theory ("Essai sur les nombres," 1798 "Theorie des
nombres," 1830) where he gave a formulation of the
law of quadratic reciprocity. He also did important
work on geodesy and on theoretical astronomy, was as
assiduous a computer of tables as Gauss, formulated in
THE NINETEENTH CENTUHY 211
Courtesy oj ScrijiOt Mathematiea
ADIUEN MARIE LEGENDRE (1752-1833)
1806 the method of least squares, and studied the
attraction of ellipsoids—even those which are not sur-
faces of revolution. Here he introduced the "Legendre"
functions. He also shared Gauss' interest in elliptic
and Eulerian integrals as well as in the foundations and
methods of Euclidean geometry.
Although Gauss penetrated deeper into the nature of
all these different fields of mathematics, Legendre pro-
duced works of outstanding importance. His compre-
hensive textbooks were for a long time authoritative,
especially his "Exercises du calcul int6gral" (3 vols,
1811-19) and his " Traits' des fonctions elliptiques et
des integrates euleriennes" (1827-32), still a standard
work. In his "Elements dc geometric" (1794) he broke
with the Platonic ideals of Euclid and presented a
textbook of elementary geometry based on the require-
ments of modern education. This book passed through
many editions and was translated into several lan-
guages; it has had a lasting influence.
5. The beginnings of the new period in the history of
French mathematics may perhaps be dated from the
establishment of military schools and academies, which
took place during the later part of the Eighteenth Cen-
tury. These schools, of which some were also founded
outside of France (Turin, Woolwich), paid considerable
attention to the teaching of mathematics as a part of
the training of military engineers. Lagrange started his
career at the Turin school of artillery; Legendre and La-
place taught at the military school in Paris, Monge at
Mezieres. Carnot was a captain of engineers. Napoleon's
interest in mathematics dates back to his student days
212 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
at the military academies of Brienne and Paris. Duringthe invasion of France by the Royalist armies the needof a more centralized instruction in military engineering
became apparent. This led to the foundation of the
Ecole Polytechnique of Paris (1794), a school whichsoon developed into a leading institution for the studyof general engineering and eventually became the modelof all engineering and military schools of the early
Nineteenth Century, including West Point in the UnitedStates. Instruction in theoretical and applied mathe-matics was an integral part of the curriculum. Emphasiswas laid upon research as well as upon teaching. Thebest scientists of France were induced to lend their
support to the school; many great French mathema-ticians were students, professors, or examiners at theEcole Polytechnique.
1
The instruction at this institution, as well as at othertechnical schools, required a new type of textbook. Thelearned treatises for the initiated which were so typical
of Euler's period had to be supplemented by college
handbooks. Some of the best textbooks of the earlyNineteenth Century were prepared for the instruction
at the Ecole Polytechnique or similar institutions. Theirinfluence can be traced in our present day texts. A goodexample of such a handbook is the "Trait6 du calcul
differentiel et du calcul integral" (2 vols., 1797) writtenby Sylvestre Francois Lacroix, from which whole gen-erations have learned their calculus. We have alreadymentioned Legendre's books. A further example is
Monge's textbook of descriptive geometry, which still
is followed by many present day books on this subject.
Comp. C. G. J. Jacobi, Werke 7, p. 355 (lecture held in 1835).
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 213
6. Gaspard Monge, the director of the Ecole Poly-
technique, was the scientific leader of the group of
mathematicians which were connected with this insti-
tute He had started his career as instructor at the
military academy of Mezieres (1768-1789), where his
lectures on fortification gave him an opportunity to
develop descriptive geometry as a special branch of
geometry. He published his lectures in the "Geom6trie
descriptive" (1795-1799). At Mdzieres he also began
to apply the calculus to space curves and surfaces, and
his papers on this subject were later published in the
"Application de l'analysc a la geometrie" (1809), the
first book on differential geometry, though not yet in
the form which is customary at present. Monge was one
of the first modern mathematicians whom we recognize
as a specialist: a geometer—even his treatment of
partial differential equations has a distinctly geometr
rical touch.
Through Monge's influence geometry began to flour-
ish at the Ecole Polyteehniquc. In Monge's descriptive
geometry lay the nucleus of projective geometry, and
his mastery of algebraic and analytical methods in their
application to curves and surfaces contributed greatly
to analytical and differential geometry. Jean Hachette
and Jean Baptiste Biot developed the analytical geo-
metry of conies and quadrics; in Biot's "Essai de
geometrie analytique" (1S02) we begin at last to recog-
nize our present textbooks of analytic geometry.
Monge's pupil, Charles Dupin, as a young naval engin-
eer in Napoleonic days, applied his teacher's methods to
the theory of surfaces, where he found the asymptotic
and conjugate lines. Dupin became a professor of
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 215
MI<5>N<&IB
geometry in Paris and gained during his long life prom-
inence as a politician and industrial promoter as
well. The "indicatrix of Dupin" and the "cyclides of
Dupin" remind us of the early interests of this man,
whose "Developpementsdcgeora6trie" (1813) and"Ap-
plications dc g6om6tric" (1825) contain a great number
of interesting ideas.
The most original Monge pupil was Victor Poncelet.
Ho bad an opportunity to reflect on his teacher's
methods during 1813 when he lived an isolated existence
as a war prisoner in Russia after the defeat of Napole-
on's "grande armec." Poncelet was attracted by the
purely synthetic side of Monge's geometry and thus
was led to a mode of thinking already suggested two
centuries before by Uesargues. Poncelet became the
founder of projective geometry.
Poncelet's "Traite" des propriety projectives des
figures" appeared in 1822. This heavy volume contains
all the essential concepts underlying the new form of
geometry, such as cross ratio, pcrspectivity, projee-
tivity, involution, and even the circular points at in-
finity. Poncelet knew that the foci of a conic can be
considered as the intersections of the tangents at the
conic through these circular points. The "Traite" also
contains the theory of the polygons inscribed in one
conic and circumscribed to another one (the so-called
closure problem of Poncelet). Although this book was
the first full treatise on projective geometry, during the
next decades this geometry reached that degree of
perfection which made it a classical example of a well-
integrated mathematical structure.
216 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
6. Monge, although a man of strict democratic prin-
ciples, stayed loyal to Napoleon, in whom he saw theexecutor of the ideals of the Revolution. In 1815, whenthe Bourbons returned, Monge lost his position andsoon afterwards died. The Ecole Polytechniquc, how-ever, continued to flourish in Monge's spirit. The verynature of the instruction made it difficult to separate
pure and applied mathematics. Mechanics received full
attention, and mathematical physics began at last to
emancipate itself from the "catoptrics" and the "diop-trics" of the Ancients. Etienne Malus discovered thepolarization of light (1810) and Augustin Fresnel re-
established Huygens' undulatory theory of light (1821).
Andr6 Marie Ampere, who had done distinguished
work on partial differential equations, became after
1820 the great pioneer in electro-magnetism. These in-
vestigators brought many direct and indirect benefits
to mathematics: one example is Dupin's improvementof Malus' geometry of light rays, which helped to mod-ernize geometrical optics and also contributed to thegeometry of line congruences.
Lagrange's "MScanique analytique" was faithfully
studied and its methods tested and applied. Statics
appealed to Monge and his pupils because of its geo-
metrical possibilities, and several textbooks on statics
appeared in the course of the years, including one byMonge himself (1788, many editions). The geometricalelement in statics was brought out in full by LouisPoinsot, for many years a member of the Frenchsuperior board of public instruction. His "Elements destatique" (1804) and "Theorie nouvelle de la rotation
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 217
des corps" (1834) added to the conception of force that
of torque ("couple"), represented Euler's theory of
moments of inertia by means of the ellipsoid of in-
ertia, and analyzed the motion of this ellipsoid when the
rigid body moves in space or turns about a fixed point.
Poncelet and Coriolis gave a geometrical touch to La-
grange's analytical mechanics; both men, as well as
Poinsot, stressed the application of mechanics to the
theory of simple machines. The "acceleration of Cori-
olis", which appears when a body moves in an accel-
erated system, is an example of such a geometrical
interpretation of Lagrange's results (1835).
The most outstanding mathematicians connected
with the early years of the Ecole Polytechnique were—
apart from Lagrange and Monge—Simeon Poisson,
Joseph Fourier, and Augustin Cauchy. All three were
deeply interested in the application of mathematics to
mechanics and physics, all three were led by this interest
to discoveries in "pure" mathematics. Poisson's pro-
ductivity is indicated by the frequency in which his
name occurs in our textbooks: Poisson's brackets in
differential equations, Poisson's constant in elasticity,
Poisson's integral, and Poisson's equation in potential
theory. This "Poisson equation," AV = 4wp, was the
result of Poisson's discovery (1812) that Laplace's
equation, AV = 0, only holds outside of the masses;
its exact proof for masses of variable density was not
given until Gauss gave it in his " Allgcmeine Lehrsatze"
(183JM0). Poisson's "Trait6 de meumique" (1811) was
written in the spirit of Lagrange and Laplace but con-
tained many innovations, such as the explicit use of
218 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 219
impulse coordinates, P, = dT/d'q<, which later inspired
the work of Hamilton and Jacobi. His book of 1837
contains "Poisson's law" in probability (see p. 145).
Fourier is primarily remembered as the author of the"Thcorie analytique dc la chaleur" (1822). This is the
mathematical theory of heat conduction and, therefore,
is essentially the study of the equation AU = kdu/dt.
By virtue of the generality of its method this bookbecame the source of all modern methods in mathe-matical physics involving the integration of partial dif-
ferential equations under given boundary conditions.
This method is the use of trigonometric series, which hadbeen the cause of discussion between Euler, D'Alembert,and Daniel Bernoulli. Fourier made the situation per-
fectly clear. He established the fact that an "arbitrary"
function (a function capable of being represented by anarc of a continuous curve or by a succession of suchArcs)could be represented by a trigonometric series of theform, S°-o (A n cos nax + B„ sin nax). Despite Euler's
and Bernoulli's observations the idea was so new andstartling at the time of Fourier's investigations that it is
said that when he stated his ideas in 1807 for the first
time, he met with the vigorous opposition of no oneother than Lagrange himself.
The "Fourier series" now became a well-established
instrument of- operation in the theory of partial differ-
ential equations with given boundary conditions. It also
received attention on its own merits. Its manipulationby Fourier fully opened the question of what to under-stand by a "function." This was one of the reasons whyNineteenth Century mathematicians found it necessaryto look closer into questions concerning rigor of mathe-
matical proof and the foundation of mathematical con-
ceptions in general.1 This task, in the specific case of
Fourier series, was undertaken by Dirichlet and Rie-
mann.
7. Cauchy's many contributions to the theory of light
and to mechanics have been obscured by the success of
his work in analysis, but we must not forget that with
Navier he belongs to the founders of the mathematical
theory of elasticity. His main glory is the theory of
functions of a complex variable and his insistence on
rigor in analysis. Functions of a complex variable had
already been constructed before, notably by D'Alem-
bert, who in a paper on the resistance of fluids of 1752
even had obtained what we now call the Cauchy-Ric-
mann equations. In Cauchy's hands complex function
theory emancipated from a tool useful in hydrodynam-
ics and aerodynamics into a new and independent field
of mathematical research. Cauchy's investigations on
this subject appeared in constant succession after 1814.
One of the most important of his papers is the " Memoire
sur les integrales denies, prises entre des limites imagi-
naires" (1825). In this paper appeared Cauchy's inte-
gral theorem with residues. The theorem that every
regular function /(z) can be expanded around each point
z = 2 in a series convergent in a circle passing through
the singular point nearest to z = 2» was published in
1831, the same year in which Gauss published his
arithmetical theory of complex numbers. Laurent's
>P. E. B. Jourdain, Note on Fourier's Influence on the Con-
ceptions of Mathematics, Proc. Intern. Congress of Mathem.
(CambridRe, 1912) II, pp. 526-527.
220 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 221
extension of Cauchy's theorem on series was published
in 1843—when it was also in the possession of Weier-
strass. These facts show that Cauchy's theory did not
have to cope with professional resistance ; the theory of
complex functions was fully accepted from its very
beginning.
Cauchy, along with his contemporaries Gauss, Abel,
and Bolzano, belongs to the pioneers of the new insist-
ence on rigor in mathematics. The (eighteenth Centuryhad been essentially a period of experimentation, in
which results came pouring in with luxurious abund-ance. The mathematicians of this age had not bothered
too much about the foundation of their work—"allez
en avant, et la foi vous viendra," D'Alembert is sup-
posed to have said. When they worried about rigor, as
Euler and Lagrange occasionally did, their argumentswere not always convincing. The time had now arrived
for a close concentration on the meaning of the results.
What was a "function" of a real variable, which showedsuch different behavior in the case of a Fourier series
and in the case of a power scries? What was i(s relation
to the entirely different "function'1of a complex vari-
able? These questions brought all (Ik; unsolved prob-
lems about the foundation of the calculus and the
existence of the potentially and the actually infinite
again into the foreground of mathematical thinking.1
What Eudoxos had done in the period after the fall
of Athenian democracy, Cauchy and his meticulous
contemporaries began to accomplish in the period of
'P. E. B. Jourdain, The Origin of Cauchy's Conception of aDefinite Integral and of the Continuity of a Function, Isis I (1913)
pp. 661-703 (see also Bibl. Math. 6 (1905) pp. 190-207).
expanding industrialism. This difference of social setting
produced different results, and where Eudoxos success
had the tendency to stifle productivity, the success of
the modern reformers stimulated mathematical pro-
ductivity to a high degree. Cauchy and Gauss were fol-
lowed by Weierstrass and Cantor.
Cauchy gave the foundation of the calculus as we now
generally accept it in our textbooks. It can be found in
his "Cours d'analyse" (1821) and ^'R^medeslecons donnecs a l'ccole royalc polytechmquc I (182<J).
Cauchy used D'Alembert's limit concept to define
the derivative of a function, and establish it on a firmer
foundation than his predecessors had been able to do.
Starting with the definition of a limit, Cauchy gave
examples such as the limit of sin a/a for a - 0. Then
he defined a "variable infiniment petite" as a variable
number which has zero for its limit; and then pos-
tulated that Ay and Ax "seront des quantites in-
Aw fix + i) - /(»)
finiment petites". He then wrote— ={
and called the limit for i - 0, the "fraction derivee,
y' ou /'(»." He placed i- ah, a an" infiiumcnt petite ,
and h a "quantity finic":
fix + ah) - fix) m fix + i)~ /(») h
a l
h was called the " differentiellc dc la fonction y - /(*)."
Furthermore, dy = dflx) = hf'(x);dx - h.
Cauchy used both Lagrange's notation and many ot
•Resume I (1823) Calcul differenticl, pp. 13-27. A strict
analysis of this procedure in M. Pasch, Mathematik am Vr^prung
(Leipzig. 1927) pp. 47-73.
16
222 A CONCISE HISTOKY OF MATHEMATICS
his contributions to real function theory without mak-
ing any concession to Lagrange's "algebraic" founda-
tion. The mean value theorem and the remainder of
the Taylor series were accepted as Lagrange had derived
them, but series were now discussed with due attention
to their convergence. Several convergence proofs in the
theory of infinite series are named after Cauchy. There
are definite steps in his books toward that "arith-
metization" of analysis which later became the core of
Weierstrass' investigations. Cauchy also gave the first
existence proof for the solution of a differential equation
and of a system of such equations (1836). In this wayCauchy offered at last a beginning of an answer to that
series of problems and paradoxes which had haunted
mathematics since the days of Zcno, and he did this
not denying or ignoring them, but by creating a mathe-
matical technique in which it was possible to do them
justice.
Cauchy, like his contemporary Balzac with whom he
shared a capacity for an infinite amount of work, was
a legitimist and a royalist. Both men had such a deep
understanding of values that despite their reactionary
ideals much of their work has retained its fundamental
place. Cauchy abandoned his chair at the Ecole Poly-
technique after the Revolution of 1830 and spent some
years at Turin and Prague; he returned to Paris in 1838.
After 1848 he was allowed to stay and teach without
having to take the oath of allegiance to the new gov-
ernment. His productivity was so enormous that the
Paris Academy had to restrict the size of all papers
sent to the "Comptes Rendus" in order to cope with
Cauchy's output. It is told that he disturbed Laplace
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 223
so greatly when he read his first paper on the converg-
ence of series to the Paris Academy that the great man
went back home to test the series in his "Mecanique
Celeste". He found, it seems, that no great errors had
been committed.
8. This Paris milieu with its intense mathematical
activity produced, around 1830, a genius of the first
order, who, comet-like, disappeared as suddenly as he
had appeared. Evariste Galois, the son of a small-town
mayor near Paris, was twice refused admission to the
Ecole Polytcchnique and succeeded at last in entering
the Ecole Normalc only to be dismissed. He tried to
make a living by tutoring mathematics, maintaining
at the same time an uneasy balance between his ardent
love for science and for democracy. Galois participated
as a republican in the Revolution of 1830, spent some
months in prison, and was soon afterwards killed in a
duel at the age of twenty-one. Two of the papers he
sent for publication got lost on the editor's desk; some
others were published long after his death. On the eve
of the duel, he wrote to a friend a summary of his dis-
coveries in the theory of equations. This pathetic docu-
ment, in which he asked his friend to submit his dis-
coveries to the leading mathematicians, ended with the
words:
"You will publicly ask Jacobi or Gauss to give their opinion
not on the truth, but on the importance of the theorems. After
this there will be, I hope, sonic people who will find it to their
advantage to decipher all this mess."
This mess ("ce gachis") contained no less than the
KVARISTE GALOIS (IS11 (832;
From a rare sketch showing him aa he appeared shortly beforehis fatal duel at the age of twenty-one
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 225
theory of groups, the key to modern algebra and to
modern geometry. The ideas had already been antici-
pated to a certain extent by Lagrange and the Italian
Ruffini, but Galois had the conception of a complete
theory of groups. He expressed the fundamental proper-
ties of the transformation group belonging to the roots
of an algebraic equation and showed that the field of
rationality of these roots was determined by the group.
Galois pointed out the central position taken by in-
variant sub-groups. Ancient problems such as the tri-
section of the angle, the duplication of the cube, the
solution of the cubic and biquadratic equation, as well
as the solution of an algebraic equation of any degree
found their natural place in the theory of Galois. Galois'
letter, as far as we know, was never submitted to Gauss
or Jacobi. It never reached a mathematical public until
Liouville published most of Galois' papers in his
"Journal de mathematiques" of 1846, at which period
Cauchy had already begun to publish on group theory
(1844-46). It was only then that some mathematicians
began to be interested in Galois' theories. Full under-
standing of Galois' importance came only through
Camille Jordan's "Traitedes substitutions" (1870) and
the subsequent publications by Klein and Lie. Now
Galois' unifying principle has been recognized as one
of the outstanding achievements of Nineteenth Century
mathematics.1
Galois also had ideas on the integrals of algebraic
functions of one variable, on what we now call Abelian
integrals. This brings his manner of thinking closer
'See G. A. Miller, History oj the Theory o] Groups to 1900.
Coll. Works I (1935) pp. 427-467.
226 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 227
to that of Riemann. We may speculate on the possibility
that if Galois had lived, modern mathematics might
have received its deepest inspiration from Paris andthe school of Lagrange rather than from Gottingen andthe school of Gauss.
9. Another young genius appeared in the twenties,
Niels Henrik Abel, the son of a Norwegian country
minister. Abel's short life was almost as tragic as that
of Galois. As a student in Christiania he thought for a
while that he had solved the equation of degree five,
but he corrected himself in a pamphlet published in
1824. This was the famous paper in which Abel proved
the impossibility of solving the general quintic equation
by means of radicals—a problem which had puzzled
the mathematicians from the time of Bombelli and
Viete (a proof of 1799 by the Italian Paolo Rufnni
was considered by Poisson and other mathematicians
as too vague). Abel now obtained a stipend which en-
abled him to travel to Berlin, Italy, and France.
Tortured by poverty and consumption, shy and retiring,
the young mathematician established few personal con-
tacts and died (1829) soon after his return to his native
land.
In this period of travel Abel wrote several papers
which contain his work on the convergence of series,
on "Abelian" integrals, and on elliptic functions. Abel's
theorems in the theory of infinite series show that hewas able to establish this theory on a reliable founda-
tion. "Can you imagine anything more horrible than
to claim that = 1" - 2"-f-
3" - 4" + etc., n being a
positive integer?" he wrote to a friend,and he continued
:
"There is in mathematics hardly a single infinite series of
which the sum is determined in a rigorous way" (letter to
Tlolmboe, 1826).
Abel's investigations on elliptic functions were con-
ducted in a short but exciting competition with Jacobi.
Gauss in his private notes had already found that the
inversion of elliptic integrals leads to single -valued,
doubly periodic functions, but he never published his
ideas. Legendre, who had spent so much effort on elliptic
integrals, had missed this point entirely and was deeply
impressed when, as an old man, he read Abel's dis-
coveries. Abel had the good luck to find a new periodical
eager to print his papers; the first volume of the
"Journal fiir die reine und angewandte Mathematik"
edited by Crelle contained no less than five of Abel's
papers. In the second volume (1827) appeared the first
part of his "Recherches sur les fonctions elliptiques,"
with which the theory of doubly periodic functions
begins.
We speak of Abel's integral equation and of Abel's
theorem on the sum of integrals of algebraic functions
which leads to Abelian functions. Commutative groups
are called Abelian groups, which indicates how close
Galois' ideas were related to those of Abel.
10. In 1829, the year that Abel died, Carl Gustav
Jacob Jacobi published his "Fundamenta nova theoriae
functionum ellipticarum." The author was a young
professor at the University of Konigsberg. He was the
son of a Berlin banker and a member of a distinguished
family; his brother Moritz in St. Petersburg was one of
228 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
the earliest Russian scientists who experimented in
electricity. After studying in Berlin, Jacobi taught at
Konigsberg from 1826 to 1843. He then spent some time
in Italy trying to regain his health and ended his career
as a professor at the University of Berlin, dying in 1851
at the age of forty-six. He was a witty and liberal
thinker, an 'nspiring teacher, and a scientist whoseenormous energy and clarity of thought left fewbranches of mathematics untouched.
Jacobi based his theory of elliptic functions onfour functions defined by infinite series and called
theta functions. The doubly periodic functions sn u,
en u and dn u are quotients of theta functions; theysatisfy certain identities and addition theorems verymuch like the sine and cosine functions of ordinarytrigonometry. The addition theorems of elliptic func-tions can also be considered as special applications of
Abel's theorem on the sum of integrals of algebraic
functions. The question now arose whether hyper-elliptic integrals could be inverted in the way elliptic
integrals had been inverted to yield elliptic functions.The solution was found by Jacobi in 1832 when hepublished his result that the inversion could be per-formed with functions of more than one variable. Thusthe theory of Abelian functions of p variables was born,which became an important branch of NineteenthCentury mathematics.
Sylvester has given the name "Jacobian" to thefunctional determinant in order to pay respect toJacobi's work on algebra and elimination theory. Thebest known of Jacobi's papers on this subject is his
"De formatione et proprietatibus determinantium"
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 229
(1841), which made the theory of determinants the
common good of the mathematicians. The idea of the
determinant was much older—it goes back essentially
to Leibniz (1693), the Swiss mathematician Gabriel
Cramer (1750), and Lagrange (1773); the name is due
to Cauchy (1812). Y. Mikanii has pointed out that the
Japanese mathematician, Seki Kowa, had the idea of a
determinant sometime before 1683.1
The best approach to Jacobi is perhaps through his
beautiful lectures on dynamics ("Vorlesungen liber
Dynamik"), published in 1866 after lecture notes from
1842-43. They are written in the tradition of the French
school of Lagrange and Poisson but have a wealth of
new ideas. Here we find Jacobi's investigations on
partial differential equations of the first order and their
application to the differential equations of dynamics.
An interesting chapter of the "Vorlesungen liber Dy-
namik" is the determination of the geodesies on an
ellipsoid; the problem leads to a relation between two
Abelian integrals.
11. Jacobi's lectures on dynamics lead us to another
mathematician whose name is often linked with that of
Jacobi, William Rowan Hamilton (not to be confused
with his contemporary, William Hamilton, the Edin-
burgh philosopher). He lived his whole life in Dublin,
where he was born of Irish parents. He entered Trinity
College, became in 1827 at the age of twenty-one Royal
Astronomer of Ireland and held this position until his
death in 1865. As a boy he learned continental mathe-
•Y. Mikami, On the Japanese Theory of Determinants, Isis 2
(1914) pp. 9-36.
230 A CONCISE HISTORY OK MATHEMATICS
maties—still a novelty in the United Kingdom—bystudying Clairaut and Laplace and showed his mastery
of the novel methods in his extremely original work on
optics and dynamics. His theory of optical rays (1824)
was more than merely a differential geometry of lino
congruences; it was also a theory of optical instruments
and allowed Hamilton to predict the conical refractions
in biaxial crystals. In this paper appeared his "charac-
teristic function," which became the guiding idea of the
"General Method in Dynamics," published in 1834-35.
Hamilton's idea was to derive both optics and dy-
namics from one general principle. Euler, in his defense
of Maupertuis, had already shown how the stationary
value of the action integral could serve this purpose.
Hamilton, in accordance with this suggestion, madeoptics and dynamics two aspects of the calculus of
variations. He asked for the stationary value of a certain
integral and considered it as a function of its limits.
This- was the "characteristic" or "principal" function,
which satisfied two partial differential equations. Oneof these partial differential equations, which is usually
written
ISdt \dq"(If. ) - •
was specially selected by Jacobi for his lectures ondynamics and is now known as the Hamilton-Jacobi
equation. This has obscured the importance of Hamil-ton's characteristic function, which had the central
place in his theory as a means of unifying mechanicsand mathematical physics. It was rediscovered by Brunsin ' S95 in the case of geometrical optics and as "eikonal"
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 231
has shown its use in the theory of optical instruments.
The part of Hamilton's work on dynamics which has
passed into the general body of mathematics is, in the
first place, the "canonical" form, q = dll/dp, p =
— dIJ/dq, in which he wrote the equations of dynamics.
Canonical form and Hamilton-Jacobi differential equa-
tion have enabled Lie to establish the relation between
dynamics and contact transformations. Another since
equally accepted idea of Hamilton was the derivation
of the laws of physics and mechanics from the variation
of an integral. Modern relativity, as well as quantum
mechanics, has based itself on"Hamiltonian" functions
as its underlying principle.
The year 1843 was a turning point in Hamilton's
life. In that year he found the quaternions, to the study
of which he devoted the later part of his life. We shall
discuss this discovery later.
12. Peter Lejeune Dirichlet was closely associated
with Gauss and Jacobi, as well as with the French math-
ematicians. He lived from 1822-27 as a private tutor and
met Fourier, whose book he studied; he also became
familiar with Gauss' " Disquisitiones arithmeticae." He
later taught at the University of Breslau and in 1855
succeeded Gauss at Gottingen. His personal acquaint-
ance with French as well as German mathematics and
mathematicians made him the appropriate man to serve
as the interpreter of Gauss and to subject Fourier series
to a penetrating analysis. Dirichlct's beautiful " Vor-
lesungen iiber Zahlentheorie" (publ. 18(53) still form
one of the best introductions into Gauss' investigations
in number theory. They also contain many new results.
232 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
In a paper of 1840 Dirichlet showed how to apply the
full power of the theory of analytical functions to prob-
lems in number theory; it was in these investigations
that he introduced the "Dirichlet" series. He also ex-
tended the notion of quadratic irrationalities to that of
general algebraic domains of rationality.
Dirichlet first gave a rigorous convergence proof of
Fourier series, and in this way contributed to a correct
understanding of the nature of a function. He also intro-
duced into the calculus of variations the so-called
Dirichlet principle, which postulated the existence of a
function v which minimizes the integral f[i>l 4- v\ +v]]dr under given boundary conditions. It was a modi-fication of a principle which Gauss had introduced in
his potential theory of 1839-40, and it later served Rie-
mann as a powerful tool in solving problems in potential
theory. We have already mentioned that Hilbert even-
tually established rigorously the validity of this prin-
ciple <p. 208).
13.With Bernhard Riemann, Dirichlet's successor at
Gottingen, we reach the man who more than any other
has influenced the course of modern mathematics.
Riemann was the son of a country minister and studied
at the University of Gottingen, where in 1851 he ob-
tained the doctor's degree. In 1854 he became Privat-
dozent, in 1859 a professor at the same university. Hewas sickly, like Abel, and spent his last days in Italy,
where he died in 1866 at forty years of age. In his short
life he published only a relatively small number of
papers but each of them was—and is—important, andseveral have opened entirely new and productive fields.
UKOlHi I HIKD1IK II HKIt.VHARD RIEMANN (1826-18C0)
234 A CONCISE HISTORY CP MATHEMATICS
In 1851 appeared Riemann's doctoral thesis on the
theory of complex functions u + iv = f(x + iy). LikeD'Alembert and Cauchy, Riemann was influenced byhydrodynamical considerations. He mapped the (xy)-
plane conformally on the (uu)-plane and established the
existence of a function capable of transforming anysimply connected region in one plane into any simply
connected region in the other plane. This led to the
conception of the Riemann surface, which introduced
topological considerations into analysis. At that timetopology was still an almost untouched subject on whichJ. B. Listing had published a paper in the "GottingenStudien" of 1847. Riemann showed its central import-
ance for the theory of complex functions. This thesis
also clarified Riemann's definition of a complex func-
tion: its real and imaginary part have to satisfy the" Cauchy-Riemann" equations, u, = v, , u, = — vx , in
a given region, and furthermore have to satisfy certain
conditions as to boundary and singularities.
Riemann applied his ideas to hypergeometric andAbelian functions (1857), using freely Dirichlet's prin-
ciple (as he called it). Among his results is the discovery
of the genus of a Riemann surface as a topological in-
variant and as a means of classifying Abelian functions.
A posthumously published paper applies his ideas to
minimal surfaces (1867). To this branch of Riemann'sactivity also belong his investigations on elliptical
modular-functions and 6-series in p independent vari-
ables, as well as those on linear differential equationswith algebraic coefficients.
Riemann became a Privatdozent in 1850 by submit-ting no less than two fundamental papers, one on trigo-
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 235
nomctric series and the foundations of analysis, the
other one on the foundations of geometry. The first of
these papers analyzed Dirichlet's conditions for the
expansion of a function in a Fourier series. One of these
conditions was that the function be "integrable." But
what does this mean? Cauchy and Dirichlet had already
given certain answers; Riemann replaced them by his
own, more comprehensive one. He gave that definition
which we now know as the "Riemann integral," and
which was replaced only in the Twentieth Century by
the Lebesgue integral. Riemann showed how functions,
defined by Fourier series, may show such properties as
the possession of an infinite number of maxima or
minima, which older mathematicians would not have
accepted in their definition of a function. The concept
of a function began seriously to emancipate from the
"curva quaecunquc libcro manus ductu descripta'" of
Euler. In his lectures Riemann gave an example of a
continuous function without derivatives; an example
of such a function which Weierstrass had given was
published in 1875. Mathematicians refused to take such
functions very seriously and called them "pathological"
functions; modern analysis has shown how natural such
functions arc and how Riemann here again had pene-
trated into a fundamental field of mathematics.
The other paper of 1854 deals with the hypotheses on
which geometry is based. Space was introduced as a
topological manifold of an arbitrary number of dim-
ensions; a metric was defined in such a manifold by
means of a quadratic differential form. Where Riemann,
'"Some curve described by freely leading the hand" (Inst.
Calc. integr. Ill §301).
236 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
in his analysis, had defined a complex function by its
local behavior, in this paper he defined the character
of space in the same way. Riemann's unifying principle
not only enabled him to classify all existing forms of
geometry, including the still very obscure non-euclidean
geometry, but also allowed the creation of any numberof new types of space, many of which have since found
a useful place in geometry and mathematical physics.
Riemann published this paper without any analytical
technique, which made his ideas difficult to follow. Later
some of the formulas appeared in a prize essay on the
distribution of heat on a solid, which Riemann sub-
mitted to the Paris Academy (1861). Here we find a
sketch of the transformation theory of quadratic forms.
The last paper of Riemann which must be mentioned
is his discussion of the number F(x) of primes less than
a given number x (1859). It was an application of com-
plex number theory to the distribution of primes and
analyzed Gauss' suggestion that F(x) approximates the
logarithmic integral /J (log !)"' dl. This paper is cele-
brated because it contains the so-called Riemann hy-
pothesis that Euler's Zeta-function f(s)—the notation
is Riemann's—if considered for complex s = x + iy, has
all non-real zeros on the line x = J. This hypothesis
has never been proved, nor has it been disproved.'
14. Riemann's concept of the function of a com-
plex variable has often been compared to that of
Weierstrass. Karl Weierstrass was for many years a
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 237
'R. Courant, Bcrnhard Riemann urul die. Mnlhcmalik der lelzlen
hundert Jahre, Naturwissch. 14 (1926) pp. 813-818.
teacher at Prussian Gymnasia (Latin high schools) and
in 1856 became professor of mathematics at the Uni-
versity of Berlin, where he taught for thirty years.
His lectures, always meticulously prepared, enjoyed in-
creasing fame; it is mainly through these lectures that
Weierstrass' ideas have become the common property
of mathematicians.
In his Gymnasial period Weierstrass wrote several
papers on hyperelliptic integrals, Abelian functions, and
algebraic differential equations. His best known contri-
bution is his foundation of the theory of complex
functions on the power series. This was in a certain
sense a return to Lagrange, with the difference that
Weierstrass worked in the complex plane and with
perfect rigor. The values of the power scries inside its
circle of convergence represent the "function element,"
which is then extended, if possible, by so-called analytic
continuation. Weierstrass especially studied entire func-
tions and functions defined by infinite products. His
elliptic function p (u) has become as established as the
older sn u, en u, dn u of Jacobi.
Weierstrass' fame has been based on his extremely
careful reasoning, on "Weierstrassian rigor," which is
not only apparent in his function theory but also in
his calculus of variations. He clarified the notions of
minimum, of function, and of derivative, and with this
eliminated the remaining vagueness of expression in
the fundamental concepts of the calculus. He was
the mathematical conscience par excellence, methodo-
logical and logical. Another example of his meticulous
reasoning is his discovery of uniform convergence. With
Weierstrass began that reduction of the principles of
17
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY
KARL WEEBRSTRASS (1815-1897)
analysis to the simplest arithmetical concepts which
we call the arithmetization of mathematics.
"It is essentially a merit of the scientific activity of Wcieratrass
that there exists at present in analysis full agreement and cer-
tainty concerning the course of such types of reasoning which are
based on the concept of irrational number and of limit in
general. We owe it to him that there is unanimity on all results
in the most complicated questions concerning the theory of
differential and integral equations, despite the most daring and
diversified combinations with application of super-, juxta-, and
transposition of limits."1
15. This arithmetization was typical of the so-called
School of Berlin and especially of Leopold Kronecker.
To this school belonged such eminent mathematicians,
proficient in algebra and the theory of algebraic num-
bers, as Kronecker, Kummer, and Frobenius. With these
men we may associate Dedekind and Cantor. Ernst
Kummer was called to Berlin in 1855 as successor to
Dirichlet; he taught there until 1883, when he volun-
tarily stopped doing mathematical work because he
felt a coming decline in productivity. Kummer further
developed the differential geometry of congruences
which Hamilton had outlined and in the course of his
study discovered the quartic surface with sixteen nodal
points, which is called after him. His reputation is
primarily based on his introduction of the "ideal"
numbers in the theory of algebraic domains of ration-
ality (1846). This theory was inspired partly by Kum-
raer's attempts to prove Fermat's great theorem and
•D. Hilbert, Ueber das Unendliche, Mathematische Annalen 95
(1926) pp. 161-190; French translation, Acta Mathematica 48
(1926) pp. 91-122.
240 A CONCI8E HISTORY OF MATHEMATIC8
partly by Gauss' theory of biquadratic residues in which
the conception of prime factors had been introduced
within the domain of complex numbers. Rummer's"ideal" factors allowed unique decomposition of num-l>ers into prime factors in a general domain of ration-
ality. This discovery made possible great advances in
the arithmetic of algebraic numbers, which were later
masterfully summarized in the report of David Hilbert
written for the German mathematical society in 1897.
The theory of Dedekind and Weber, which established
a relation between the theory of algebraic functions andthe theory of algebraic numbers in a certain domain of
rationality (1882), was an example of the influence of
Rummer's theory on the process of arithmetisation of
mathematics.
Leopold Rronecker, a man of private means, settled
in Berlin in 1855 where he taught for many years at the
university without a formal professional chair, only
accepting one after Rummer's retirement in 1883.
Rronecker's main contributions were in elliptic func-
tions, in ideal theory, and in the arithmetic of quadraticforms; his published lectures on the theory of numbersare careful expositions of his own and of previous
discoveries, and also show clearly his belief in thenecessity of the arithmetisation of mathematics. Thisbelief was based on his search for rigor; mathematics,he thought, should be based on number,and all numberon the natural number. The number t, for instance,
rather than be derived in the usual geometrical way,
should be based on the series I — s + i — =+••• and6 5 7
thus on a combination of integer numh rs; certain con-
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 241
tinued fractions for r might also serve the same purpose.
Rronecker's endeavor to force everything mathematical
into the pattern of number theory is illustrated by his
well-known statement at a meeting in Berlin in 1886:
"Die ganzen Zahlen hat der Hebe Gott gemacht, alles
andere ist Menschenwerk.'" He accepted a definition
of a mathematical entity only in the case that it can
be verified in a finite number of steps. Thus he coped
with the difficulty of the actually infinite by refusing
to accept it. Plato's slogan that God always "geom-
etrizes" was replaced, in Rronecker's school, by the
slogan that God always "arithmetizes."
Rronecker's teaching on the actually infinite was in
flagrant contrast to the theories of Dedekind and espe-
cially of Cantor. Richard Dedekind, for thirty-one years
professor at the Technische Hochschule in Brunswick,
constructed a rigorous theory of the irrational. In two
small books, "Stetigkeit und Irrationalzahlen" (1872)
and "Was sind und was sollen die Zahlen" (1882) ,he
accomplished for modern mathematics what Eudoxos
had done for Greek mathematics. There is a great
similarity between the "Dedekind cut" with which
modern mathematics (except the Rronecker school)
defines irrational numbers and the ancient Eudoxos
theory as presented in the fifth book of Euclid's ele-
ments. Cantor and Wcierstrass gave arithmetical defini-
tions of the irrational numbers differing somewhat from
•"The integer numbers have been made by God, everything
else is the work of man."
Translated as "Continuity and Irrational Numbers ,lne
Nature and the Meaning of Numbers" by A. Beman (Chicago,
1901).
GEORG CANTOR (1845-1918)
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 243
the Dedekind theory but based on similar considera-
tions.
The greatest heretic in Kronecker's eye, however, was
Georg Cantor. Cantor, who taught at Halle from 1869
until 1905, is known not only because of his theory of
the irrational number, but also because of his theory of
aggregates ("Mengenlehre"). With this theory Cantor
created an entirely new field of mathematical research,
which was able to satisfy the most subtle demands of
rigor once its premises were accepted. Cantor's publica-
tions began in 1870 and continued for many years; in
1883 he published his "Grundlagen einer allgemeinen
Mannigfaltigkeitslehre." In these papers Cantor de-
veloped a theory of transfinite cardinal numbers based
on a systematical mathematical treatment of the actu-
ally infinite. He assigned the lowest transfinite cardinal
number K to a denumerable set, giving the continuum
a higher transfinite number, and it thus became pos-
sible to create an arithmetic of transfinite numbers
analogous to ordinary arithmetic. Cantor also defined
transfinite ordinal numbers, expressing the way in
which infinite sets are ordered.
These discoveries of Cantor were a continuation of the
ancient scholastic speculations on the nature of the
infinite, and Cantor was well aware of it. He defended
St. Augustine's full acceptance of the actually infinite,
but had to defend himself against the opposition of
many mathematicians who refused to accept the infinite
except as a process expressed by ~ .Cantor's leading
opponent was Kronecker, who represented a totally
opposite tendency in the same process of arithmetiza-
tion of mathematics. Cantor finally won full acceptance
244 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
when the enormous importance of his theory for thefoundation of real function theory and of topology be-came more and more obvious—this especially after
Lebeegue in 1901 had enriched the theory of aggregateswith his theory of measure. There remained logicaldifficulties in (he theory of transfinite numbers andparadoxes appeared, such as those of Burali Forti andRussell. This again led to different schools of thoughton the foundation of mathematics. The Twentieth Cen-tury controversy between the formalists and the in-
tuitinists was a continuation on a novel level of thecontroversy between Cantor and Kronecker.
16. Contemporaneous with this remarkable develop-ment of algebra and analysis was the equally remarkableflowering of geometry. It can be traced back to Monge'sinstruction, in which we find the roots of both the"synthetic" and the "algebraic" method in geometry.In the work of Monge's pupils both methods becameseparated, the " synthetic" method developed into pro-jective geometry, the "algebraic" method into ourmodern analytical and algebraic geometry. Projectivegeometry as a separate science began with Poncelet'sbook of 1822. There were priority difficulties, as sooften in cases concerning a fundamental discovery, sincePoncelet had to face the rivalry of Joseph Gergonne,professor at Montpelier. Gergonne published several im-portant papers on projective geometry in which hegrasped the meaning of duality in geometry simultane-ously with Poncelet. These papers appeared in the"Annales de mathematiques," the first purely mathe-
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 245
matical periodical. Gergonne was its editor; it appeared
from 1810 to 1832.
Typical of Poncelet's mode of thinking was another
principle, that of continuity, which enabled him to
derive the properties of one figure from those of another.
He expressed the principle as follows:
If the figure results from another by a continuous change, and
is as general as the first, then a property proved on the first figure
can be transferred to the other without further consideration.
This was a principle which had to be handled with
great care, since the formulation was far from precise.
Only modern algebra has been able to define its domain
more accurately. In the hands of Poncelet and his
school it led to interesting, new, and accurate results,
especially when it was applied to changes from the real
to the imaginary. It thus enabled Poncelet to state that
all circles in the plane had "ideally two imaginary
points at infinity in common," which also brought in
the so-called "line at infinity" of the plane. G. H. Hardy
has remarked that this means that projective geometry
accepted the actually infinite without any scruples.'
The analysts were to remain divided on this subject.
Poncelet's ideas were further developed by German
geometers. In 1826 appeared the first of Steiner's publi-
cations, in 1827 Mobius' " Baryccntrischer Calcul," in
1828 the first volume of Plucker's " Analytisch-geome-
trische Entwicklungen." In 1831 appeared the second
>G. H. Hardy, A Course of Pure Mathematics (Cambridge.
1933, 6th ed.) Appendix IV.
246 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
volume, followed in 1832 by Steiner's "Systematische
Entwicklung." The last of the great German pioneer
works in this type of geometry appeared in 1847 with
the publication of Von Staudt's axiomatic "Geometrie
der Lage."
Both the synthetic and the algebraic approach to
geometry were represented among these German geom-
eters. The typical representative of the synthetic (or
"pure") school was Jacob Steiner, a self-made Swiss
farmer's son, a "Hirtenknabe", who became enamored of
geometry by making the acquaintance of Pestalozzi's
ideas. He decided to study at Heidelberg and later
taught at Berlin, where from 1834 until his death in 1863
he held a chair at the university. Steiner was thoroughly
a geometer; he hated the use of algebra and analysis
to such an extent that he even disliked figures. Geom-
etry in his opinion could best be learned by concentrated
thought. Calculating, he said, replaces, while geometry
stimulates, thinking. This was certainly true for Steiner
himself, whose methods have enriched geometry with a
large number of beautiful and often intricate theorems.
We owe him the discovery of the Steiner surface with a
double infinity of conies on it (also called the Romansurface). He often omitted the proof of his theorems,
which has made Steiner's collected works a treasure
trove for geometers in search of problems to solve.
Steiner constructed his projective geometry in a
strictly systematic way, passing from perspectivity to
projectivity and from there to the conic sections. Healso solved a number of isoperimetrical problems in his
own typical geometrical way. His proof (1836) that the
circle is the figure of largest area for all closed curvesJAKOB STEINER (1796-1863)
248 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
of given perimeter made use of a procedure by which
every figure of given perimeter which is not a circle
could be changed into another one of the same perimeter
and of larger area. Steiner's conclusion that the circle
therefore represented the maximum suffered from one
omission: he did not prove the actual existence of a
maximum. Dirichlet tried to point it out to Steiner; a
rigorous proof was later given by Weierstrass.1
Steiner still needed a metric to define the cross ratio
of four points or lines. This defect in the theory was re-
moved by Christian Von Staudt, for many years a
professor at the University of Erlangen. Von Staudt, in
his "Geometrie der Lage," defined the "Wurf" of four
points on a straight line in a purely projective way, and
then showed its identity with the cross ratio. He used
for this purpose the so-called Moebius net construction,
which leads to axiomatic considerations closely related
to Dedekind's work when irrational values of projective
coordinates are introduced. In 1857 Von Staudt showed
how imaginary elements can be rigorously introduced
into geometry as double elements of elliptic involutions.
During the next decades synthetic geometry grew
greatly in content on the foundations laid by Poncelet,
Steiner, and Von Staudt. It was eventually made the
subject of a number of standard textbooks, of which
Reye's "Geometrie der Lage" (1868, 3rd ed. 1886-1892)2
is one of the best known examples.
17. Representatives of algebraic geometry were
W. Blaschke, Kreis und Kugd (Leipzig, 1916) pp. 1-42.
'Translated as "Lectures on the geometry of position" (NewYork, 1898).
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 249
Moebius and Plucker in Germany, Chaslns in France,
and Cayley in England. August Ferdinand Moebius,
more than fifty years observer, later director of the
Leipzig astronomical observatory, was a scientist of
many parts. In his book "Der barycentrische Calciil"
he was the first to introduce homogeneous coordinates.
When the masses m, , m» , m 3 are placed at the vertices
of a fixed triangle, Moebius gave to the center of
gravity (barycentrum) of these masses the coordi-
nates m, : m3 : m* , and showed how these coordinates
are well fitted to describe the projective and affine
properties of the plane. Homogeneous coordinates, from
now on, became the accepted tool for the algebraic
treatment of projective geometry. Working in quiet
isolation not unlike his contemporary Von Staudt,
Moebius made many other interesting discoveries. An
example is the null system in the theory of line con-
gruences, which he introduced in his textbook on statics
(1837). The "Moebius strip," a first example of a non-
orientable surface, is a reminder of the fact that
Moebius is also one of the founders of our modern
science of topology.
Julius Plucker, who taught for many years at Bonn,
was an experimental physicist as well as a geometer. He
made a series of discoveries in crystal magnetism,
electrical conduction in gases, and spectroscopy. In a
series of papers and books, especially in his "Neue
Geometrie des Raumes" (1868-69) he reconstructed
analytical geometry by the application of a wealth of
new ideas. Plucker showed the power of the abbreviated
notation, in which for instance C\ + \C3 = represents
a pencil of conies. In this book he introduced homoge-
250 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
neous coordinates, now as "projective" coordinates
based on a fundamental tetrahedron, and also the
fundamental principle that geometry needs not solely
be based on points as basic element. Lines, planes,
circles, spheres can all be used as the elements ("Raum-eleraente") on which a geometry can be based. This
fertile conception threw new light on both synthetic
and algebraic geometry, and created new forms of
duality. The number of dimensions of a particular form
of geometry could now be any positive integer number,
depending on the number of parameters necessary to
define the "element." Plucker also published a general
theory of algebraic curves in the plane, in which he
derived the "Plucker relations" between the numberof singularities (1834, 1839).
Michel Chasles, for many years the leading repre-
sentative of geometry in France, was a pupil of the
Ecole Polytechnique in the later days of Monge and
in 1841 became professor at this institute. In 1846 he
accepted the chair of higher geometry at the Sorbonne,
especially established for him, where he taught for manyyears. Chasles' work had much in common with that of
Plucker, notably in his ability to obtain the maximumof geometrical information from his equations. It led
him to adroit operation with isotropic lines and circular
points at infinity. Chasles followed Poncelet in the use
of "enumcrative" methods, which in his hands de-
veloped into a new branch of geometry, the so-called
"cnumerative geometry." This field was later fully ex-
plored by Hermann Schubert in his " Kalkiil der abzahl-
enden Geometrie" (1879) and by H. G. Zeuthen in his
"Abzahlende Methoden" (1914). Both books reveal the
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 251
strength as well as the weakness of this type of algebra
in geometrical language. Its initial success provoked
a reaction led by E. Study, who stressed that " precision
in geometricis may not perpetually be treated as inci-
dental."'
Chasles had a fine appreciation for the history of
mathematics, especially of geometry. His well-known
" Apercu historique sur l'origine et le deVeloppement des
mSthodes en geom6trie" (1837) stands at the beginning
of modern history of mathematics. It is a very readable
text on Greek and modern geometry, and is a good
example of a history of mathematics written by a pro-
ductive scientist.
18. During these years of almost feverish produc-
tivity in the new projective and algebraic geometries
another novel and even more revolutionary type of
geometry lay hidden in a few obscure publications dis-
carded by most leading mathematicians. The question
whether Euclid's parallel postulate is an independent
axiom or can be derived from other axioms had puzzled
mathematicians for two thousand years. Ptolemy had
tried to find an answer in Antiquity, Naslr al-dln in the
Middle Ages, Lambert and Legendre in the Eighteenth
Century. All these men had tried to prove the axiom
and had failed; even if they reached some very interest-
ing results in the course of their investigation. Gauss was
the first man who believed in the independent nature of
the parallel postulate, which implied that other geom-
etries, based on another choice of axiom, were logically
«See E. Study, Verhandlungen Third Intern. Congress Heidel-
berg 1905, pp. 388-395, B. L. Van der Waerden, Diss. Leiden 1926.
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 253
Courtesy of Seripta Malhtmatiea
NICOLAI IVANOVITCH LOBACHEVSKY (1793-1856)
possible. Gauss never published bis thoughts on this
subject. The first to challenge openly the authority of
two millennia and to construct a non-euclidean geom-
etry were a Russian, Nikolai Ivanovitch Lobachevsky,
and a Hungarian, Janos Bolyai. The first in time to
publish his idea was Lobachevsky, who was a professor
in Kazan and lectured on the subject of Euclid's parallel
axiom in 1826. His first book appeared in 1829-30 and
was written in Russian. Few people took notice of it.
Even a later German edition with the title "Geome-
trische Untersuchungen zur Theorie der ParalleUinien"
received little attention, even though Gauss showed
interest. By that time Bolyai had already published his
ideas on the subject.
Janos (Johann) Bolyai was the son of a mathematics
teacher in a provincial town of Hungary. This teacher,
Farkas (Wolfgang) Bolyai, had studied at Gottingen
when Gauss was also a student there. Both men kept
up an occasional correspondence. Farkas spent much
time in trying to prove Euclid's fifth postulate (p. 60),
but could not come to a definite conclusion. His son in-
herited his passion and also began to work on a proof
despite his father's plea to do something else:
"You should detest it just as much as lewd intercourse, it can
deprive you of all your leisure, your health, your rest, and the
whole happiness of your life. This abysmal darkness might per-
haps devour a thousand towering Newtons, it will never be light
on earth " (Letter of 1820).
Janos Bolyai entered the army and built up a reputa-
tion as a dashing officer. He began to accept Euclid's
postulate as an independent axiom and discovered that
18
254 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
it was possible to construct a geometry, based on
another axiom, in which through one point in a plane
an infinity of lines can be laid which do not intersect
a line in the plane. This was the same idea which had
already occurred to Gauss and Lobachevsky. Bolyai
wrote down his reflections, which were published in
1832 as an appendix to a book of his father and which
had the title "Appendix scientiam spatii absolute veramexhibens." The worrying father wrote to Gauss for
advice on the unorthodox views of his son. When the
answer from Gottingen came, it contained enthusiastic
approval of the younger Bolyai's work. Added to this
was Gauss' remark that he could not praise Bolyai, since
this would mean self-praise, the ideas of the" Appendix"
having been his own for many years.
Young Janos was deeply disappointed by this letter
of approval which elevated him to the rank of a great
scientist but robbed him of his priority. His disappoint-
ment increased when he met with little further recogni-
tion. He became even more upset when Lobachevsky's
book was published in German (1840); he never pub-
lished any more mathematics.
Bolyai's and Lobachevsky's theories were similar in
principle, though their papers were very different. It is
remarkable how the new ideas sprang up independently
in Gottingen, Budapest, and Kazan, and in the sameperiod after an incubation period of two thousand years.
It is also remarkable how they matured partly outside
the geographical periphery of the world of mathematical
research. Sometimes great new ideas are born outside,
not inside, the schools.
Non-euclidean geometry (the name is due to Gauss)
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 255
remained for several decades an obscure field of science.
Most mathematicians ignored it, the prevailing Kantian
philosophy refused to take it seriously. The first lead-
ing scientist to understand its full importance was
Riemann, whose general theory of manifolds (1854)
made full allowance not only for the existing types
of non-euclidean geometry, but also for many other,
so-called Ricmannian, geometries. However, full accept-
ance of these theories came only when the generation
after Riemann began to understand the meaning of his
theories (1870 and later).
Still another generalization of classical geometry
originated in the years before Riemann and did not find
full appreciation until after his death. This was the
geometry of more than three dimensions. It came fully
developed into the world in Grassmann's "Ausdeh-
nungslehre'fTheory of Extension") of 1844. Hermann
Grassmann was a teacher at the Gymnasium in Stettin
and was a man of extraordinary versatility; he wrote
on such varied subjects as electric currents, colors and
acoustics, linguistics, botany, and folklore. His Sanskrit
dictionary on the Rigveda is still in use. The "Aus-
dehnungslehre," of which a revised and more readable
edition was published in 1861, was written in strictly
euclidean form. It built up a geometry in a space of n
dimensions, first in affine, then in metrical space. Grass-
mann used an invariant symbolism, in which we now
recognize a vector and tensor notation (his "gap"
products are tensors) but which made his work almost
inaccessible to his contemporaries. A later generation
took parts of Grassmann's structure to build up vector
analysis for affine and for metrical spaces.
256 A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
Although Cayley in 1843 introduced the same con-
ception of a space of n dimensions in a far less forbidding
form, geometry of more than three dimensions wasreceived with distrust and incredulity. Here again Rie-
mann's address of 1854 made full appreciation easier.
Added to Riemann's ideas were those of Pliicker, whopointed out that space elements need not be points
(1865), so that the geometry of lines in three space
could be considered as a four-dimensional geometry, or,
as Klein has stressed, as the geometry of a four-dimen-
sional quadric in a five-dimensional space. Full accept-
ance of geometries of more than three dimensions
occurred only in the later part of the Nineteenth Cen-tury, mainly because of their use in interpreting the
theory of algebraic and differential forms in more than
three variables.
19. The names of Hamilton and Cayley show that by1840 English speaking mathematicians had at last be-
gun to catch up with their continental colleagues. Until
well into the Nineteenth Century the Cambridge andOxford dons regarded any attempt at improvement of
the theory of fluxions as impious revolt against the
sacred memory of Newton. The result was that the
Newtonian school of England and the Leibnizian school
of the continent drifted apart to such an extent that
Euler, in his integral calculus (1768), considered aunion of both methods of expressions as useless. Thedilemma was broken in 1812 by a group of youngmathematicians at Cambridge who, under the inspira-
tion of the older Robert Woodhouse, formed an "Ana-lytical Society" to propagate the differential notation. ARTHUR CAYLEY (1821-1895)
258 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Leaders were George Peacock, Charles Babbage, and
John Herschel. They tried, in Babbage's words, to
advocate "the principles of pure d-ism as opposed to
the dot-age of the university." This movement metinitially with severe criticism, which was overcome by
such actions as the publication of an English translation
of Lacroix' "Elementary Treatise on the Differential
and Integral Calculus" (1816). The new generation in
England now began to participate in modern mathe-
matics.
The first important contribution came not from the
Cambridge group, however, but from some mathe-
maticians who had taken up continental mathematics
independently. The most important of these mathema-ticians were Hamilton and George Green. It is interest-
ing to notice that with both men, as well as with
Nathaniel Bowditch in New England, the inspiration
to study "pure d-ism" came from the study of Laplace's
"MScanique Celeste." Green, who was a self-taught
miller's aon of Nottingham, followed with great care
the new discoveries in electricity. There was, at that
time (c. 1825), almost no mathematical theory to ac-
count for the electrical phenomena; Poisson, in 1812,
had made no more than a beginning. Green read La-
place, and, in his own words
:
"Considering how desirable it was that a power of universal
agency, like electricity, should, as far as possible, be submitted
to calculation, and reflecting on the advantages that arise in the
solution of many difficult problems, from dispersing altogether
with a particular examination of each of the forces which actuate
the various bodies in any system, by confining the attention
solely on that peculiar function on whose differentials they all
depend, I was induced to try whether it would be possible to
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 259
discover any general relations, existing between this function and
the quantities of electricity in the bodies producing it."
The result was Green's "Essay on the Application of
Mathematical Analysis to Theories of Electricity and
Magnetism" (1828), the first attempt at a mathematical
theory of electro-magnetism. It was the beginning of
modern mathematical physics in England and, with
Gauss' paper of 1839, established the theory of potential
as an independent branch of mathematics. Gauss did
not know Green's paper, which only became wider
known when William Thompson (the later Lord Kel-
vin), had it reprinted in Crelle's Journal of 1846. Yet
the kinship of Gauss and Green was so close that where
Green selected the term "potential function", Gauss
selected almost the same term, "potential," for the
solution of Laplace's equation. Two closely related
identities, connecting line and surface integrals, are
called the formula of Green and the formula of Gauss.
The term "Green's function" in the solution of partial
differential equations also honors the miller's son who
studied Laplace in his spare time.
We have no room for a sketch of the further develop-
ment of mathematical physics in England, or, for that
matter, in Germany. With this development the names
of Stokes, Rayleigh, Kelvin, and Maxwell, of Kirchhoff
and Helmholtz, of Gibbs and of many others are con-
nected. These men contributed to the solution of partial
differential equations to such an extent that mathe-
matical physics and the theory of linear partial differ-
ential equations of the second order sometimes seemed
to become identified. Mathematical physics, however,
260 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
brought fertile ideas to other fields of mathematics, to
probability and complex function theory, as well as to
geometry. Of particular importance was James Clerk
Maxwell's "Treatise on Electricity and Magnetism"(1873, 2 vols.), which gave a systematic mathematical
exposition of the theory of electromagnetism based onFaraday's experiments. This theory of Maxwell event-
ually dominated mathematical electricity, and later
inspired the theories of Lorentz on the electron andEinstein on relativity.
20. Nineteenth Century pure mathematics in Eng-land was primarily algebra, with applications primarily
to geometry and with three men, Cayley, Sylvester, andSalmon, leading in this field. Arthur Cayley devoted his
early years to the study and practice of law, but in 1863
he accepted the new Sadlerian professorship of mathe-matics at Cambridge where he taught for thirty years.
In the forties, while Cayley practiced law in London, hemet Sylvester, at that time an actuary; and fromthose years dates Cayley's and Sylvester's commoninterest in the algebra of forms—or quantics, as Cayleycalled them. Their collaboration meant the beginning
of the theory of algebraic invariants.
This theory had been "in the air" for many years,
especially after determinants began to be a subject of
study. The early work of Cayley and Sylvester wentbeyond mere determinants, it was a conscious attemptto give a systematic theory of invariants of algebraic
forms, complete with its own symbolism and rules of
composition. This was the theory which was later im-proved by Aronhold and Clebsch in Germany and
JAMES JOSEPH SYLVESTER (1814-1897)
From an old photograph
262 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
formed the algebraic counterpart of Poncclet's projec-
tive geometry. Cayley's voluminous work covered alarge variety of topics in the fields of finite groups,algebraic curves, determinants, and invariants of alge-
braic forms. To his best known works belong his nine
"Memoirs on Quantics" (1854-1878). The sixth paperof this series (1859) contained the projective definition
of a metric with respect to a conic section. This dis-
covery led Cayley to the projective definition of theeuclidean metric and in this way enabled him to assign
to metrical geometry its position inside the frameworkof projective geometry. The relation of this projective
metric to non-euclidean geometry escaped the eye of
Cayley; it was later discovered by Felix Klein.
James Joseph Sylvester was not only a mathemati-cian but also a poet, a wit, and with Leibniz the greatest
creator of new terms in the whole history of mathe-matics. From 1855 to 1869 he taught at WoolwichMilitary Academy. He was twice in America, the first
time as a professor at the University of Virginia (1841-
42), the second time as a professor at Johns HopkinsUniversity in Baltimore (1877-1883). During this secondperiod he was one of the first to establish graduate workin mathematics at American universities; with theteaching of Sylvester the flourishing of mathematicsbegan in the United States.
Two of Sylvester's many contributions to algebrahave become classics: his theory of elementary divisors
(1851, rediscovered by Weieratrass in 1868) and his
law of inertia of quadratic forms (1852, already knownto Jacobi and Riemann, but not published). We also
owe to Sylvester many terms now generally accepted,
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 263
such as invariant, covariant, contravariant, cogredient
and syzygy. Many anecdotes have been attributed to
him—several of the absent-minded-professor variety.
The third English algebrist-geometer was George
Salmon, who during his long life was connected with
Trinity College, Dublin, Hamilton's alma mater, where
he instructed in both mathematics and divinity. His
main merit lies in his well-known textbooks which excel
in clarity and charm. These books opened the road to
analytical geometry and invariant theory to several
generations of students in many countries and even now
have hardly been surpassed. They are the "Conic
Sections" (1848), "Higher Plane Curves" (1852),
"Modern Higher Algebra" (1859), and the "Analytic
Geometry of Three Dimensions" (1862). The study of
these books can stiU be highly recommended to all
students of geometry.
21. Two products of the algebra of the United King-
dom deserve our special attention :Hamilton's quatern-
ions and Clifford's biquaternions. Hamilton, the Royal
Astronomer of Ireland, having completed his work on
mechanics and optics, turned in 1835 to algebra. His
"Theory of Algebraic Couples" (1835) defined algebra
as the science of pure time and constructed a rigorous
algebra of complex numbers on the conception of a
complex number as a number pair. This was probably
independent of Gauss, who in his theory of biquadratic
residues (1831) had also constructed a rigorous algebra
of complex numbers, but based on the geometry of the
complex plane. Both conceptions are now equally
accepted. Hamilton subsequently tried to penetrate
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 265
W. R. Hamilton
(1805-1865)
I
into the algebra of number triples, number quadruples,
etc. The light dawned upon him—as his admirers like
to tell—on a certain October day of 1843, when walking
under a Dublin bridge he discovered the quaternion.
His investigations on quaternions were published in
two big books, the "Lectures on Quaternions" (1853)
and the posthumous "Elements of Quaternions" (1866).
The best known part of this quaternion calculus was
the theory of vectors (the name is due to Hamilton),
which was also part of Grassmann's theory of extension.
It is mainly because of this fact that the algebraic works
of Hamilton and Grassmann are now frequently quoted.
In Hamilton's days, however, and long afterwards, the
quaternions themselves were the subject of an exag-
gerated admiration. Some British mathematicians saw
in the calculus of quaternions a kind of Leibnizian
"arithmetica universalis," which of course aroused a
reaction (Heaviside versus Tait) in which quaternions
lost much of their glory. The theory of hypercomplex
numbers, elaborated by Peirce, Study, Frobenius, and
Cartan, has eventually placed quaternions in their
legitimate place as the simplest associative number
system of more than two units. The cult of the quatern-
ion in its heyday even led to an " International Associa-
tion for Promoting the Study of Quaternions and
Allied Systems of Mathematics," which disappeared as
a victim of the World War I. Another aspect of the
quaternion controversy was the fight between partisans
of Hamilton and Grassmann, when, through the efforts
of Gibbs in America and Heaviside in England, vector
analysis had emerged as an independent brand of
mathematics. This controversy raged between 1890
2GG A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 267
and the first world war and was finally solved by the
application of the theory of groups, which established
the merits of each method in its own field of operation.1
William Kingdon Clifford, who died in 1879 at the
age of thirty-three, taught at Trinity College, Cam-bridge and at University College, London. He was one
of the first Englishmen who understood Riemann, and
with him shared a deep interest in the origin of our
space conceptions. Clifford developed a geometry of
motion for the study of which he generalized Hamilton's
quaternions into the so-called biquaternions (1873-
1876). These were quaternions with coefficients taken
from a system of complex numbers o + be, where t1 may
be 4- 1 ,— 1 or 0, and which could also be used for the
study of motion in non-euclidean spaces. Clifford's
"Common Sense in the Exact Sciences" is still good
reading; it brings out the kinship in thinking between
him and Felix Klein. This kinship is also revealed in
the term "spaces of Clifford-Klein" for certain closed
euclidean manifolds in non-euclidean geometry. If Clif-
ford had lived, Riemann's ideas might have influenced
British mathematicians a generation earlier than they
actually did.
For many decades pure mathematics in the English
speaking countries maintained its strong emphasis onformal algebra. It influenced the work of BenjaminPeirce of Harvard University, a pupil of Nathaniel
Bowditch, who did distinguished work in celestial
mechanics and in 1872 published his "Linear Associa-
F. Klein, Vorlesungen liber die Enluncklung der Mathematikin 19. Jahrhundert (Berlin, 1927) II, pp. 27-52; J. A. Schouten,
Grundlagen der Veklor-und Affinoranalysis (Leipzig, 1914).
tive Algebras." one of the first systematic studies of
hypercomplcx numbers. The formalist trend in English
mathematics may also account for the appearance of
an investigation of "The Laws of Thought" (1854) by
George Boole of Queen's College, Dublin. Here it was
shown how the laws of formal logic, which had been
codified by Aristotle and taught for centuries in the
universities, could themselves be made the subject of a
calculus. It established principles in harmony with
Leibniz' idea of a "characteristica generalis." This
"algebra of logic" opened a school of thought which
endeavored to establish a unification of logic and
mathematics. It received its impetus from Gottlob
Frege's book "Die Grundlagen der Arithmetik" (1884),
which offered a derivation of arithmetical concepts
from logic. These investigations reached a climax in
the Twentieth Century with the "Principia Mathe-
matica" of Bertrand Russell and Alfred N. Whitehead
(1910-1913); they also influenced the later work of
Hilbert on the foundations of arithmetic and the elimi-
nation of the paradoxes of the infinite.
22. The papers on the theory of invariants by Cayley
and Sylvester received the greatest attention in Ger-
many, where several mathematicians developed the
theory into a science based on a complete algorithm . The
main figures were Hesse, Aronhold, Clebsch, and
Gordan. Hesse, who was a professor at Konigsberg and
later at Heidelberg and Munich, showed, like Plucker,
lD. Hilbert-W. Ackermann, Orundzuge der theorelitchen Logik
(Berlin, 1928). M Black, The Nature of Mathematics (New York,
London, 1933).
268 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
the power of abbreviated methods in analytical geom-
etry. He liked to reason with the aid of homogeneous
coordinates and of determinants. Aronhold, who taught
at the Technische Hochschule in Berlin, wrote a paper
in 1858 in which he developed a consistent symbolism
in invariant theory with the aid of so-called "ideal"
factors (which bear no relation to those of Kummer);
this symbolism was further developed by Clebsch in
1861, under whose hands the " Clebsch-Aronhold" sym-
bolism became the almost universally accepted method
for the systematic investigation of algebraic invariants.
We now recognize in this symbolism as well as in
Hamilton's vectors, Grassman's gap products, and
Gibbs' dyadics, special aspects of tensor algebra. This
theory of invariants was later enriched by Paul Gordan
of the University of Erlangen, who proved (1868-69)
that to every binary form belongs a finite system of
rational invariants and covariants in which all other
rational invariants and covariants can be expressed in
rational form. This theorem of Gordan (the "Endlich-
keitssatz") was extended by Hilbert in 1890 to algebraic
forms in n variables.
Alfred Clebsch was professor at Karlsruhe, Giessen,
and Gottingen and died at thirty-nine years of age.
His life was a condensation of remarkable achievements.
He published a book on elasticity (1862), following the
leadership of Lam6 and De Saint Venant in France ; he
applied his theory of invariants to projective geometry.
He was one of the first men who understood Riemann
and was a founder of that branch of algebraic geometry
in which Riemann's theory of functions and of multiply
connected surfaces was applied to real algebraic curves.
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 269
Clebsch-GordanVTheorie der Abelschen Funktionen"
(1866) gave a broad outline of these ideas. Clebsch also
founded the "Mathematische Annalen," for more than
sixty years the leading mathematical journal. His lec-
tures on geometry, published by F. Lindemann, remain
a standard text on projective geometry.
23. By 1870 mathematics had grown into an enor-
mous and unwieldy structure, divided into a large num-
ber of fields in which only specialists knew the way.
Even great mathematicians—Hermite, Weierstrass,
Cayley, Beltrami—at most could be proficient in only
a few of these many fields. This specialization has con-
stantly grown until at present it has reached alarming
proportions. Reaction against it has never stopped, and
some of the most important achievements of the last
hundred years have been the result of a synthesis of
different domains of mathematics.
Such a synthesis had been realized in the Eighteenth
Century by the works of Lagrange and Laplace on
mechanics. They remained a basis for very powerful
work of varied character. The Nineteenth Century
added to this new unifying principles, notably the
theory of groups and Riemann's conception of function
and of space. Their meaning can best be understood in
the work of Klein, Lie, and Poincarl.
Felix Klein was Pliicker's assistant in Bonn during
the late sixties; it was here that he learned geometry.
He visited Paris in 1870 when he was twenty-two years
of age. Here he met Sophus Lie, a Norwegian six years
his senior, who had become interested in mathematics
only a short time before. The young men met the French
19
FELIX KLEIN (1849-1925)
From a photograph taken during his vigorous middle years
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 271
mathematicians, among them Camilie Jordan of the
Ecole Polytechnique and studied their work. Jordan,
in 1870, had just written the "Trait6 des substitutions,"
his book on substitution groups and Galois' theory of
equations. Klein and Lie began to understand the
central importance of group theory and subsequently
divided the field of mathematics more or less into two
parts. Klein, as a rule, concentrated on discontinuous,
Lie on continuous groups.
In 1872 Klein became professor at Erlangen. In his
inaugural address he explained the importance of the
group conception for the classification of the different
fields of mathematics. The address, which became known
as the "Erlangen program," declared every geometry,
to be the theory of invariants of a particular trans-
formation group. By extending or narrowing the group
we can pass from one type of geometry to another.
Euclidean geometry is the study of the invariants of
the metrical group, projective geometry of those of the
projective group. Classification of groups of transfor-
mation gives us a classification of geometry; the theory
of algebraic and differential invariants of each group
gives us the analytical structure of a geometry. Cay-
ley's projective definition of a metric allows us to con-
sider metrical geometry in the frame of projective
geometry. "Adjunction" of an invariant conic to a
projective geometry in the plane gives us the non-eu-
clidean geometries. Even relatively unknown topology
received its proper place as the theory of invariants of
continuous point transformations.
In the previous year Klein had given an important
example of his mode of thinking when he showed how
272 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
non-euclidean geometries can be conceived as pro-
jective geometries with a Cayley metric. This brought
full recognition at last to the neglected theories of
Bolyai and Lobachevsky. Their logical consistency wasnow established. If there were logical mistakes in non-
euclidean geometry, then they could be detected in
projective geometry, although few mathematicians were
willing to admit such a heresy. Later this idea of an"image" of one field of mathematics on another field
was often used and played an important factor in
Hilbert's axiomatics of geometry.
The theory of groups made possible a synthesis of the
geometrical and algebraic work of Monge, Poncelet,
Gauss, Cayley, Clcbsch, Grassmann, and Riemann.Riemann's theory of space, which had offered so manysuggestions of the Erlangen program, inspired not only
Klein but also Helmholtz and Lie. Helmholtz in 1868
and 1884 studied Riemann's conception of space, partly
by looking for a geometrical image of his theory of
colors, partly by inquiring into the origin of our ocular
measure. This led him to investigate the nature of geo-
metrical axioms and especially Riemann's quadratic
measurement. Lie improved on Helmholtz' specula-
tions concerning the nature of Riemann's measurementby analyzing the nature of the underlying groups of
transformations (1890). This "Lie-Hehnholtz" space
problem has been of importance not only to relativity
and group theory, but also to physiology.
Klein gave an exposition of Riemann's conception of
complex functions in his booklet "Ueber Riemann'sTheorie der algebraischen Funktionen" (1882), in whichhe stressed how physical considerations can influence
MARIUS sophus lie (1842-1899)
274 A C0NCI8E HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
even the subtlest type of mathematics. In the "Vor-lesungen ueber das Ikosaeder" (1884) he showed that
modern algebra could teach many new and surprising
things about the ancient Platonic bodies. This work wasa study of rotation groups of the regular bodies and their
role as Galois groups of algebraic equations. In extensive
studies by himself and by scores of pupils Klein applied
the group conception to linear differential equations,
to elliptic modular functions, to Abelian and to the
new "automorphic" functions, the last in an interesting
and friendly competition with Poincare\ Under Klein's
inspiring leadership Gottingen, with its traditions of
Gauss, Dirichlet, and Riemann, became a world center
of mathematical research where young men and womenof many nations gathered to study their special sub-jects as an integral part of the whole of mathematics.Klein gave inspiring lectures, the notes of which cir-
culated in mimeographed form and provided wholegenerations of mathematicians with specialized infor-
mation and—above all—with an understanding of theunity of their science. After Klein's death in 1925 several
of these lecture nptes were published in book form.While in Paris Sophus Lie had discovered the contact
transformation, and with this the key to the whole of
Hamiltonian dynamics as a part of group theory. Afterhis return to Norway he became a professor in Christi-
ania, later, from 1886 to 1898, he taught at Leipzig.
He devoted his whole life to the systematic study of
continuous transformation groups and their invariants,
demonstrating their central importance as a classifying
principle in geometry, mechanics, ordinary and partial
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 275
differential equations. The result of this work was codi-
fied in a number of standard tomes, edited with the aid
of Lie's pupils Scheffers and Engel ("Transformations-
gruppen," 1888-1893; "Differentialgleichungen," 1891;
"Kontinuierliche Gruppen," 1893; " Beruhrungstrans-
formation," 1896). Lie's work has since been con-
siderably enriched by the French mathematician.Elie
Cartan.
24. France, faced with the enormous growth of math-
ematics in Germany, continued to produce excellent
mathematicians in all fields. It is interesting to compare
German and French mathematicians; Hermite with
Weicretrass, Darboux with Klein, Hadamard with Hil-
bert, Paul Tannery with Moritz Cantor. From the
forties to the sixties the leading mathematician was
Joseph Liouville, professor at the College de France in
Paris, a good teacher and organizer and editor for many
years of the "Journal de mathematiques pures et appli-
quees." He investigated in a systematic way the arith-
metic theory of quadratic forms of two and more
variables, but "Liouville's theorem" in statistical me-'
chanics shows him as a productive worker in an entirely
different field. He established the existence of trans-
cendental numbers and in 1844 proved that neither e
nor e* can be a root of a quadratic equation with rational
coefficients. This was a step in the chain of arguments
which led from Lambert's proof in 1761 that r is irra-
tional to Hermite's proof that e is transcendental (1873)
and the final proof by F. Lindemann (a Weierstrass
pupil) that t is transcendental (1882) .. Liouville and
276 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
several of his associates developed the differential geom-etry of curves and surfaces; the formulas of Frenet-Serret (1847) came out of Liouville's circle.
Charles Hermite, a professor at the Sorbonne and atthe Ecole Polytechniquc, became the leading representa-tive of analysis in France after Cauchy's death in 1857.Hermite's work, as well as that of Liouville, was in thetradition of Gauss and Jacobi; it also showed kinshipwith that of Riemann and Weierstrass. Elliptic func-tions, modular functions, theta-functions, number andinvariant theory all received his attention, as the names"Hermitian numbers", "Hermitian forms" testify. Hisfriendship with the Dutch mathematician Stieltjes, whothrough Hermite's intervention obtained a chair atToulouse, was a great encouragement to the discovererof the Stieltjes integral and the application of continuedfractions to the theory of moments. The appreciationwas mutual :
" Vous avez toujours raison et j'ai toujourstort,"
1
Hermite once wrote to his friend. The four vol-
ume "Correspondance" (1905) between Hermite andStieltjes contains a wealth of material, mainly on func-tions of a complex variable.
The French geometrical tradition was gloriously con-tinued in the books and papers of Gaston Darboux.Darboux was a geometer in the sense of Monge, ap-proaching geometrical problems with full mastery ofgroups and differential equations, and working onproblems of mechanics with a lively space intuition.
Darboux was professor at the College de France andfor half a century active in teaching. His most influential
work was his standard "Lecons sur la theorie g6ne>ale
•"You are always right and I am always wrong."
T. i. stieltjes (1856-1894)
278 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
des surfaces" (4 vols., 1887-1896), which presented theresults of a century of research in the differential geom-etry of curves and surfaces. In Darboux' hands this
differential geometry became connected in the mostvaried ways with ordinary and partial differential equa-tions as well as with mechanics. Darboux, with his
administrative and pedagogical skill, his fine geometricalintuition, his mastery of analytical technique, and his
understanding of Riemann, occupied a position in
France somewhat analogous to that of Klein in Ger-many.
This second part of the Nineteenth Century was theperiod of the great French comprehensive textbookson analysis and its applications, which often appearedunder the name of "Cours d'analyse" and were writtenby leading mathematicians. The most famous are the"Cours d'analyse" of Camille Jordan (3 vols., 1882-87)and the "Traite" d'analyse" of Emile Picard (3 vols.,
1891-96), to which was added the "Cours d'analysemathematique" by Edouard Goursat (2 vols., 1902-05).
25. The greatestFrench mathematician of the secondhalf of the Nineteenth Century was Henri Poincarg,from 1881 until his death professor at the Sorbonne in
Paris. No mathematician of his period commanded sucha wide range of subjects and was able to enrich them all.
Each year he lectured on a different subject; theselectures were edited by students and cover an enormousfield: potential theory, light, electricity, conduction ofheat, capillarity, electromagnetics, hydrodynamics, ce-lestial mechanics, thermodynamics, probability. Everyone of these lectures was brilliant in its own way;
HENRI POINCARE (1854-1912)
280 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 281
together they present ideas which have borne fruit in
the works of others while many still await further
elaboration. Poincarg, moreover, wrote a number of
popular and semi-popular works which helped to givea general understanding of the problems of modernmathematics. Among them are" La valeur de la science"
(1905) and "La science et l'hypothese" (1906). Apartfrom these lectures Poincare' published a large numberof papers on the so-called automorphic and fuchsianfunctions, on differential equations, on topology, andon the foundations of mathematics, treating with greatmastery of technique and full understanding all
pertinent fields of pure and applied mathematics. Nomathematician of the Nineteenth Century, with thepossible exception of Riemann, has so much to sayto the present generation.
The key to the understanding of Poincare's work maylie in his meditations on celestial mechanics, and in
particular on the three-body problem ("Les m&hodesnouvelles de m^canique celeste", 3 vols., 1893). Herehe showed direct kinship with Laplace and demon-strated that even at the end of the Nineteenth Centurythe ancient mechanical problems concerning the uni-verse had lost nothing of their pertinence to the pro-ductive mathematician. It was in connection with theseproblems that Poincare' studied divergent series anddeveloped his theory of asymptotic expansions, that heworked on integral invariants, the stability of orbits,
and the shape of celestial bodies. His fundamental dis-
coveries on the behavior of the integral curves of differ-
ential equations near singularities, as well as in the large,
are related to his work on celestial mechanics. This is
also true of his investigations on the nature of proba-
bility, another field in which he shared Laplace's in-
terest. Poincare' was like Euler and Gauss, wherever
we approach him we discover the stimulation of origi-
nality. Our modern theories concerning relativity, cos-
mogony, probability, and topology are all vitally in-
fluenced by Poincare's work.
26. The Risorgimento, the national rebirth of Italy,
also meant the rebirth of Italian mathematics. Several
of the founders of modern mathematics in Italy par-
ticipated in the struggles which liberated their country
from Austria and unified it ; later they combined polit-
ical positions with their professional chairs. The in-
fluence of Riemann was strong, and through Klein,
Clebsch, and Ceyley the Italian mathematicians ob-
tained their knowledge of geometry and the theory
of invariants. They also became interested in the theory
of elasticity with its strong geometrical appeal.
Among the founders of the new Italian school of
mathematicians were Brioschi, Cremona, and Betti. In
1852 Francesco Brioschi became professor in Pavia,
and in 1862 organized the technical institute at Milan
where he taught until his death in 1897. He was a
founder of the "Annali di matematica pura et appli-
cata" (1858)—which indicated in the title its desire to
emulate Crelle's and Liouville's journals. In 1858 in
company with Betti and Casorati he visited the leading
mathematicians of France and Germany. Volterra later
claimed that "the scientific existence of Italy as a
282 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
nation" dated from this journey.1
Brioschi was the
Italian representative of the Cayley-Clebsch type of
research in algebraic invariants. Luigi Cremona, after
1873 director of the engineering school in Rome, has
given his name to the birational transformation of plane
and space, the "Cremona" transformations (1863-65).
He was also one of the originators of graphical statics.
Eugenio Beltrami was a pupil of Brioschi and occu-
pied chairs in Bologna, Pisa, Pavia, and Rome. His
main work in geometry was done between 1860 and1870 when his differential parameters introduced a cal-
culus of differential invariants into surface theory.
Another contribution of that period was his study of
so-called pseudospherical surfaces, which are surfaces
of which the Gaussian curvature is negative constant.
On such a pseudosphere we can realize a two-dimen-
sional non-euclidean geometry of Bolyai. This was, with
Klein's projective interpretation, a method to showthat there were no internal contradictions in non-euclidean geometry, since such contradictions wouldalso appear in ordinary surface theory.
By 1870 Riemann's ideas became more and more the
common good of the younger generation of mathema-ticians. His theory of quadratic differential forms wasmade the subject of two papers by the German mathe-maticians E. B. Christoffel and R. Lipschitz (1870).
The first paper introduced the "Christoffel" symbols.
These investigations, combined with Beltrami's theory
of differential parameters, brought Gregorio Ricci-Cur-
bastro in Padua to his so-called absolute differential
»V. Volterra, Bull. Am. Math. Soc. 7 (1900) p. 60-«2.
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 283
calculus (1884). This was a new invariant symbolism
originally constructed to deal with the transformation
theory of partial differential equations, but it provided
at the same time a symbolism fitted for the transfor-
mation theory of quadratic differential forms.
In the hands of Ricci and of some of his pupils,
notably of Tullio Levi-Civita, the absolute differential
calculus developed into what we now call the theory of
tensors. Tensors were able to provide a unification of
many invariant symbolisms, and also showed their
power in dealing with general theorems in elasticity,
hydrodynamics, and relativity. The name tensor has
its origin in elasticity (W. Voigt, 1900).
The most brilliant representative of differential geom-
etry in Italy was Luigi Bianchi. His "Lezioni di geo-
metria differenziale" (2nd ed., 3 vols., 1902-1909) ranks
with Darboux' "Theorie generate des surfaces" as a
classical exposition of Nineteenth Century differential
geometry.
27. David Hilbert, professor at Gottingen, presented
to the International Congress of Mathematicians in
Paris in 1900 a series of twenty-three research projects.
At that time Hilbert had already received recognition
for his work on algebraic forms and had prepared his
now famous book on the foundations of geometry
("Grundlagen der Geometrie," 1900). In this book he
gave an analysis of the axioms on which euclidean
geometry is based and explained how modern axiomatic
research has been able to improve on the achievements
of the Greeks.
284 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
In this address of 1900 Hilbert tried to grasp the
trend of mathematical research of the past decades andto sketch the outline of future productive work.
1 Asummary of his projects will give us a better under-
standing of the meaning of Nineteenth Century math-ematics.
First of all Hilbert proposed the arithmetical formu-
lation of the concept of continuum as it was presented
in the works of Cauchy, Bolzano, and Cantor. Is there
a cardinal number between that of a denumerable set
and that of a continuum? and can the continuum be
considered as a well ordered assemblage? Moreover,what can be said about the compatibility of the arith-
metical axioms?
The next projects dealt with the foundations of
geometry, with Lie's concept of a continuous group of
transformations—is differentiability necessary?—andwith the mathematical treatment of the axioms of
physics.
Some special problems followed, first in arithmetic
and in algebra. The irrationality or transcendence of
certain numbers was still unknown (e.g. a? for analgebraic a, and irrational /3). Equally unknown wasthe proof of Riemann's hypothesis concerning the roots
of the Zeta-function, as well as the formulation of the
most general law of reciprocity in number theory.
Another project in this field was the proof of the finite-
ness of certain complete systems of functions suggested
by the theory of invariants.
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 285
'Translation in Bulletin Am. Math. Soc. (2), 8 (1901-02) pp.437-479.
The fifteenth question demanded a rigorous formu-
lation of Schubert's enumerative calculus, the sixteenth
a study of the topology of algebraic curves and surfaces.
Another problem concerned the division of space by
congruent polyhedra.
The remaining projects dealt with differential equa-
tions and the calculus of variations. Are the solutions
of regular problems in the calculus of variations always
analytic? Has every regular variational problem under
given boundary conditions a solution? How about the
uniformization of analytic relations by means of auto-
morphic functions? Hilbert ended his enumeration with
an appeal for the further development of the calculus of
variations.1
Hilbert's program demonstrated the vitality of math-
ematics at the end of the Nineteenth Century and
contrasts sharply with the pessimistic outlook existing
toward the end of the Eighteenth Century. At present
some of Hilbert's problems have been solved; others
still await their final solution. The development of
mathematics in the years after 1900 has not disap-
pointed the expectations raised at the close of the
Nineteenth Century. Even Hilbert's genius, however,
could not foresee some of the striking developments
which actually have taken place and are taking place
to-day. Twentieth Century mathematics has followed
its own novel path to glory.
A discussion of the problems outlined by Hilbert after thirty
years in L. Bieberbach, Uber den Einfluss von IHlberls Pariser
Vortrag vher "Mathematische Probleme" auf die EnlwicMung der
Mathematik in den letzten dreissig Jahren, Naturwisaenschaften
18 (1936) pp. 1101-1111.
20
286 A CONCISE HISTORY OF MATHEMATICS
Literature.
The best history of Nineteenth Century mathematics
is:
F. Klein, Vorlesungen iiber die Entvricklung der Mathe-
matik im 19. Jahrhundert I, II (Berlin, 1926, 1927).
A bibliography of leading Nineteenth Century math-
ematics in:
G. Sarton, The Study of the History of Mathematics
(Cambridge, Mass, 1936) pp. 70-98.
Lists biographies of Abel, Adams, Airy, Appell, Aronhold,
Babbagc, Bacbmann, Baire, Ball, Bcllavitis, Beltrami, Bertrand,
Bessel, Betti, Boltzmann, Bolyai, Bolzano, Boole, Borchardt,
Brioschi, G. Cantor, L. Carnot, Caucby, Cayley, Chasles, Cheby-
ahev, Clausiu8, Clebsch, Clifford, Cournot, Couturat, Cremona,
Darboux, G. Darwin, Dedekind, De Morgan, Diriohlet, Edge-
worth, Eisenstein, Encke, Fiedler, Fourier, Fredholm, Frcge,
Fresnel, Fuchs, Galois, Gauss, Germain, Gibbs, Gopel, Gordan,
Grassmann, Green, Halphen, Jevons, Jordan, Kelvin, Kirchhoff,
Klein, Kovalevskaia, Kronecker, Kummer, Laguerre, Lam6,
Laplace, Legendre, Lemoine, Leverrier, Lie, Liouville, Lobachev-
sky, Lorentz, MacCullagh, Maxwell, Mferay, Minkowski, Mittag-
Leffler, MObius, F. Neumann, Newcomb, E. Noether, Olbere,
Oppolzer, Painlev6, Peacock, B. Peirce, Pfaff, PlQcker, Poincare,
1'oinsoi, Poisson, Poncelet, Ramanujan, Rankine, Rayleigh,
Riemann, Roscnhain, Ruffini, Saint-Venant, Schwarz, Smith,
v. Staudt, Steiner, Stokes, Sylow, Sylvester, Tait, Weieretrass.
Other bibliographical material in the issues of Scripta Mathematica
(N. Y., 1932—present).
The works of the following mathematicians have been
collected: Abel. Beltrami, Betti, Bolzano (partly),
Borchardt, Brioschi, G. Cantor, Cauchy, Cayley,
THE NINETEENTH CENTURY 287
Chebyshev, Clifford, Cremonar Dedekind, Dirich-
let, Eisenstein, Fourier, Fuchs, Galois, Gauss,
Gibbs, Grassmann, Green, Halphen, Hamilton,
Hermite, Hilbert, Jacobi, Klein, Kronecker, La-
guerre, Lie, Lobachevsky, G. A. Miller, Minkow-
ski, Mobius, Plucker, Poincare' (partly), Ramanu-
jan, Riemann, Ruffini, Schwarz, H. J. S. Smith,
Steiner, Sylow, Sylvester, Tait, Weierstrass.
Furthermore:
L. de Launay, Monge, Fondateur de VEcole Poly-
technique (Paris, 1933).
F. Klein u .a. Materialmenfur eine wissenschaftliche Bio-
graphie von Gauss (8 vols., Leipzig, 1911-1920).
Quaternion centenary celebration. Proc. Roy. Irish
Acad. A50 (1945) pp. 69-98; among the articles is
A. J. McConnell, The Dublin mathematical school
in the First Half of ihe Nineteenth Century.
E. Kotter. Die Entwicklung der synlhelischen Geomelrie
von Monge bis auf von Staudt. Jahresber. Deutach.
Math. Verein 5 (1901) pp. 1-486.
M. Black, The Nature of Mathematics (London, 1933),
has a bibliography on symbolic logic.
V. F. Kagan, Lobachevsky (Moscow, Leningrad, 1945,
in Russian).
D. J. Struik, Outline of a History of Differential Geometry.
Isis 19 (1933) pp. 92-120; 20 (1934) pp. 161-191,
A CONCISE HISTORY OP MATHEMATICS
J. T. Merz, A History of European Thought in the Nine-teenth Century (London, 1903-14).
J. Hadamard, The Psychology of Invention in the Mathe-matical Field (Princeton, N. J., 1945).
G. Prasad, Some Great Mathematicians of the NineteenthCentury: Their Lives and Their Works (2 vols.
Benares, 1933-34).
Index
d. = died; c. = circa.; fl.= flourished
Abel, Niels Henrik (1808-
1889), 226-227; 190, 220,
226, 229, 286Abu K&mil, 95, 103
Abu-1-Wafa, 93
Academie francaise, 141
Accademia dei Lincci, 141
Achaemenidcs, 43Achilles, 49Ackermann, W., 267Acoka, 32Adelard of Bath (fl. 1880), 102
Akbar, 86Al-Battftni (Albatcgnius), 93
Alberti, Leon Battista, 110,126Alcuin (735-804), 100-101; 86Alexander the Great (356-888
B.C.), 56Alexandria, 31, 57, 66, 77, 78,
83,86Al-Fazfiri (d.c. 777), 87Algebra Speciosa, 1 16, 134Al-Haitham (Alhazen), 95; 77
Al-Karkhl, 93, 95Al-Khwarizml, 89-92; 95, 103
AUman, G. J., 81Al-Ma'mOn, 89AI-.Mimsiir, 89alphabet, 40Al-Zarq&li (Arzachel), 95Ampere, Andre Marie (1776-
1836), 216
Andoyer, H., 199
Antonins, 70
apagoge, "44
Apollonios (c. 860-170 B.C.),
66-67; 42, 57, 109, 134, 136,
138, 144Arago, Dominique (1786-1853),
198Archibald, R. C., XIII, 36, 37Archimedes, 61-64; 42, 53, 54,
76, 80, 109, 116, 117, 125-
127, 129, 140, 144, 187Archytas (fl. 400-366 B.C.), 46,
52
Aristarchos(fl'.
880 B.C.), 68Aristotle (384-388 B.C.), 48,
106, 115
arithmos, 77Aronhold, Siegfried Heinrich
(1819-1884), 286; 260,267-8
Arte del Cambio, 105Aryabhata I, 85Auchter, H., 200Augustine, St. (354-430), 106,
243Australian tribes, 3
Babbage, Charles (1798-1871),
258Bakshali, 87Balzac, Honore de, 222Barrow, Isaac (1630-1677),
138, 139, 149, 156, 161
Basle, 164-167
Bayes, Thomas (d. 1 751), 196,
200Beethoven, L. van, 205Bell, E. T., XIII, XIV, 208
289
290 INDEX
Beltrami, Eugenio (1835-1900)
,
282; 269, 286Beman, A., 241Berkeley, George (.1685-1763),
178; 50, 153, 160, 187Bernoulli, Daniel {1700-1788),
163, 167, 184, 202, 218Bernoulli, Jakob (.1661,-1705),
163-166; 157, 167, 196, 202Bernoulli, Johann {1667-170),
163-167; 157, 158, 169, 202Bernoulli, Nicolaus (1695-
1726), 166-168Betti, Enrico (1823-1892), 281,286
Bhfiskara, 85-86Bianchi, Luigi {1856-1928),
283Bieberbach, L,, 284Biernatzki, K. L., 34
Biot, Jean Baptiate (1774-1862), 34, 213
Black, M., 267, 287Blaschke, W., 248Boas, F., 8Boethius, A. M. S. (c. 480-
524), 99Bologna, 94, 109-115Bolyai, Farkas {1775-1856),
253, 254Bolyai, Janos {1802-1860), 253-254; 272, 282
Bolzano, Bernard {1781-1848),107, 220, 284, 286
Bombelli, Raffael (c. 1630-afler 1672), 114; 226
Boole, George {1816-1864),267Borchardt.CarlWilhelm (1817-
1880), 286Bortolotti, Ettore, 112, 122Bosnians, Henri {1862-1928),
96, 122, 123, 139, 140, 162
Boyer, C. B., 87, 122, 131, 160Bowditch, Nathaniel (1773-
1838), 195, 258, 266Bradwardine, Thomas (c.1290-
1349), 107
Brahe, Tycho (1646-1601),115, 127
Brahmagupta(ft. 626), 85, 86
Brahml numerals, 32Braunmiihl, A. von, XVIBriggs, Henry (1561-16S1),121Brioschi, Francesco (1824-
1897), 281, 282, 286Brown, B. H., 182
Brans, H., 230Bubnov, N., 88Buffon, Comte de (1707-1788),
185
Bull, L., 36
Burali Forti C., 244
Cajori, Florian (1859-1930),Xin, XIV, XVII, 82, 88,
121, 131, 158, 161, 191, 199Cantor, Georg (1846-1918),
243-244; 106, 107, 203, 221,242, 284, 286
Cantor, Moritz (1829-1920),XIV, 275
Cardano, Hieronimo (1601-
1676), 113; 45, 122Carnot, Lazare (1753-1828),
191, 194Caralaw, H. S 123Carton, E., 275Cartesianism, XI, 132, 179,
180 (see also Descartes)
Casorati, Felice (1835-1890),281
INDKX 291
Cassini, Jacques (1677-1756),
180
Cassini, Jean Dominique (1625-
1712), 179, 180
Cattle problem, 65
Cauchy, Augustin (1789-1867),
219-223; 203, 225, 229, 234,
235, 276, 284, 286
Cavalieri, Bonaventura (1698-
1647), 131-132; 107, 127,
129, 138, 139, 141, 149
Cayley, Arthur (1821-1895),
260, 262; 203, 249, 256, 257,
267, 269, 271, 272, 281, 282,
286
Crface, A. B., 36
Charlemagne, 100
Chasles, Michel (1793-1880),
250-251; 249
Chatelet, Marquise du (1706-
1749), 179
Chebyehev, Pafnuti L. (1821-
1894), 287
Child, J. M., 161
Childs, Gordon, 12
Ch'in Chiu-Shao, 96
Chou pi, 34Christoffcl . Elwin Bruno (1829-
1900), 281
Clairaut, Alexis Claude (1718-
1766), 181; 186, 194, 198, 230
Clebsch, Alfred (1833-1872),
260-269; 260, 267, 272, 281,
282Clifford, William Kingdon
(1846-1879), 266; 263, 287
Codex Vigilanus, 104
Commandino, Federigo (1509-
1676), 126complex numbers, 114, 263
computus, 100
Conant, L., 3
Condorcet, Marquis de (1748-
1794), 185, 186
Constantinople, 76, 83. 108
Coolen, Ludolph van (1640-
1610), 118
Coolidge, J. L., XVI, 66
Copernicus, Nicolas (1478-
1643), 112, 116, 127, 129
Coriolis, G. (1792-1843), 217
Cosaista, 116
Courant, R., 236
Cramer, Gabriel (1704-1762),
187, 229
Crelle, A. L., 227
Cremona, Luigi (1830-1903),
281, 282, 287
Cyril, St., 76
D'Alembert, Jean LeRond(1717-1788), 182-183; 167,
175, 177, 191, 192, 194, 198,
203, 205, 218-223
Dantzig, T., XVIDarboux, Gaston (1842-1917),
276-277; 275, 283
Datta, B., 33, 37, 97
Deacon, A. B., 12
Decker, Ezekiel Do (fl. 1630),
119
Dedekind, Richard (1831-
1916), 241; 53, 240, 242, 248,
287Delic problem, 45Deming, W. E., 200Democritus (c. 460-c. 860), 54,
55DeMorgan, Augustus, 182Desargues, Gerard (1698-
1662), 148-149; 140, 215
Descartes, Rene (1596-1650),
INDEX
132-138; 66, 107, 118, 140,
149, 156, 160, 179(see also Cartesianisra)
Dichotomy, 48Dickson, I,. E., XVIDiderot, Denis (1713-1784),
182
Diophantos, 74-75; 72, 79, 84,86, 93, 144
Dirichlet, Peter G. Lejeune(1805-1869), 231-232; 208,219, 234, 235, 239, 248, 274,287
DuPasquier, L. G., 199Dupin, Charles (1784-187S),213-214; 216
Duplication of cube, 44-45DQrer, Albrecht (1471-1528),
112Dyksterhuis, E. J., 81, 162
Ecole Polytechniquc, 211-213Edler, Florence, 105Eels, W. C., 4Einstein, A., 260Eisenstein, Ferdinand Gott-
hold (1823-1862), 287Encyclopedic, 181, 182Ene8tr6m,Gustav(/S52-/a*S),XIV, 168
Engel, F., 275Erasmus, Dcsiderius (1466-
1536), 164Erathostenes, 54, 127Euclid, 58-61; 44, 51, 52-54,
71, 72, 74, 77, 78, 110, 144,
209, 211, 242, 251, 253Eudoxos, 52; 53, 54, 57, 59-61,
66, 68, 220, 221, 242Euler, Leonard (1707-1783),
167-177; 73, 138, 163, 180-
182, 184-188. 192, 194, 198,
199,203,211,212,217,218,220, 235, 236, 256, 281
exhaustion method, 53Faille, Jean Charles Delia
(1697-166S), 162Fermat, Pierre (1601-1666),
136, 144-145; 138-140, 144,145, 160, 180, 184, 239
Ferrari Ludovico (1522-1665),113, 122
Ferro, Scipio Del (c. 1465-1526), 109, 112
Fibonacci, see Leonardo ofPisa
Firdawsl, 88Fouchcr, 160
Fourier, Joseph (1768-1830),218; 184, 202, 217, 219, 231,235, 287
Francesca, Pier Delia (c. 1416-1492), 110
Frank, E., 42, 46, 81Frege, Gottlob (1848-1926),267
Frenet, F., 276Fresnel, Augustin (1788-1827),
216
Frobenius, Georg (1849-1917),239
Fuchs, Lazarus (1833-1902),287
Galilei, Galileo (1564-1642),126, 129, 130, 131
Galois, Evariste (1811-1832),223-226; 190, 227, 274, 287
Gandz, S., 7, 37, 88, 92Gauss, Carl Fried rich (1777-
1855), 203-209; 169, 174,
199, 202, 211, 220, 221, 223,
226, 227, 231, 232, 236, 240,
INDEX 293
251, 253-256, 259, 263, 272,
274, 276, 281, 287
Gerbert (940-1003), 101
Gergonne, Joseph Diaz (/ 771-
1859), 244, 245Gherardo of Cremona (fl.
1176), 102
Gibbs, John Willard (1839-
1903), 260, 268, 287Ginsburg, J., 12
Girard, Albert (c. 1590-1633)
205gobar numerals, 88
Goethe, J. W., 205
Gordan, Paul (1837-1912),
267-269
Goureat, Edouard (1858-1936),
278Gow, J., 81
Grandi, Guido (1671-1742),
176, 177Grasemann, Hermann (1809-
1877), 255; 265, 268, 272,
287Green, George (1798-1841),
258-259; 1.95, 208, 287
Green, H. G., 200
Gregory, James (1638-1676),
158Grimm, Jacob (1785-1863), 4
Grossman, H., 160
Guldin, Paul (1577-1643), 127.
139Gunther, S., XV
Hachette, Jean (1769-1834),
213Hadamard, J., 275, 288
Halley, Edmund (1656-1742),
148, 178
Halphen, Georges (1844-1889),
287
Hamilton, W., 229
Hamilton, William Rowan(1806-1865), 229-231, 263-
265; 195, 239, 256, 258, 268,
274, 287
Hammurabi, 26, 47
Han, 70
Hardy, G. H., 245
harpedonaptai, 7
Harun-al-Raschld, 89Hayashi, T., 97
Heath, Thomas Little (1861-
1940), 42, 80Heaviside, Oliver (1850-1925),
196, 265Hegel, G. W. F., 205Helmholtz, Hermann von
(1821-1894), 260, 272Hermite, Charles (1822-1901),
276; 269, 275, 287
Heron, 73-74; 71, 79, 109, 125,
126Herschel, John F. W. (1792-
1871), 258Hesse, Otto (1811-1874), 267Hilbert, David (1862-1943),
208, 232, 239, 240, 267, 268.
272, 275, 283, 284, 287Hindu-Arabic numerals, 71,
87,88,104,105,118,119,122Hipparchos, 68, 69, 72Hippokrates of Chios (fl.
450-
430 B.C.), 43, 44Hoernes, M., 8Holmboe, B., 227Hoppe, E., 131
Horner, William George (1786-
1837), 96Hospital, Guillaume Francois
1' (1661-1704), 158; 136Hudde, Johannes (1633-1704),
139
294 INDEX
Huygens, Christiaan (1689-
1696), 142; 138, 141, 143,
148, 156, 160, 165, 166, 184,
216
Hypatia, 76Hypothesis of E. Frank, 46
Hypothesis of S. Luria, 54Hypothesis of H. Pircnnc, 99Hypothesis of B. Riemann, 236Hypothesis of P. Tannery, 50
I-ching, 34irrational, 47
Jacobi, Carl G. J. (1804-1851),227-229; 202, 223, 230, 231,236, 262, 276, 287
Jaina, 33
Jordan, Camille (1838-1988),225, 271, 278
Jourdain, Philip E. B. (1879-
1919), 199, 219, 220Justinian (483-666), 76
Kagan, V. F.. 287Kaar, D. S., 97
Kant, Immanuel (17S4-1804),
194, 205Kantianism, XI, 209, 255Karpinski, Loin's Charles,XVII, 88, 91, 97, 103
Kaye, G. R., 38Kelvin, Lord (1884-1907), 259,260
Kepler, Johann (1671-1630),
45, 55, 115, 118, 127-129,149, 161
Khayyam, Omar, 94; 88, 89,90,97
Kidinnu, 72Kingsleyr C, 76
Kirchhoff, Gustav Robert (182
4
-1887), -259
Klein, Felix (1849-1986), 269-274; XIII, 203, 209, 225,
262, 266, 275, 278, 281, 282,
286, 287K6nig, Samuel (1718-1767),
180, 181
Kotter, E., 287Krakeur, L. G., 182Kronccker, Leopold (1883-
1891), 240-241; 239, 243,
244,287Krueger, R. L., 182
Kummer, Ernst Eduard (1810-
1893), 239-240; 144, 268Kyeser, 126
Lacroix, Sylvestre Francois
(1766-1843), 212, 258Lagrange, Joseph Louis (1736-
1813), 188-192; 163, 168,
179, 181, 194, 198, 200, 202,
211, 216-218, 220-222, 225,
226, 229, 236, 269Laguerre, Edmond (1834-
1886), 287Lambert, Johann Heinrich
(1788-1777), XI, 199, 251,
275Lam6, Gabriel (1795-1871), 26Landau, E., 44Landen, John (1719-1760),
178, 179, 186, 200Laplace, Pierre Simon (1749-
1887), 192-196; 163, 169,
174, 186, 197-199, 202, 207,
211, 217, 222, 223, 230, 259,
269, 280, 281Launay, L. de, 287Laurent, P. M. H., 219, 220Lebesgue, Henri, 235, 244
INDEX 295
Legendre, Adrien Marie (1752-
1833), 209-211; 196, 202,
207, 212, 251
Leibniz, Gottfried Wilhelm(1646-1716), 154-161; 118,
134, 142, 149, 163-166, 180,
186, 202, 229, 25P, 262, 265
Leonardo Da Vinci (1452-
1519), 126
Leonardo of Pisa (c. 1170-
1260), 103-104; 95, 110
Levi-Civita, Tullio (1878-
1941), 283
Lipschitz, Rudolf (1838-1903),
282
Lie, Sophus (1842-1899), 274-
275; 225, 231, 269, 271, 272,
284,287Lietzmann, W., 7
Lindemann, P., 269, 275
Liouville, Joseph (1809-1888),
275; 225, 276
Listing, Johann Benedict
(1808-1888), 234
Lobachevsky, Nicolai Ivano-
vitch (1793-1856), 252-254;
272, 287
Loria, Gino, XV, XVI, 80, 200
logarithms, 119-121
Lorentz, H. A., 260
Lunulae, 43—44
Luria, S., 54, 81
Mach, E., 181
Maclaurin, Colin (1698-1746),
186, 187Mahfivirfi (ft. 850), 85
Marx, K., 176
Malus, Etienne (1776-1812),
216Manning, H. P., 36
Maupertuis, Pierre De (1698-
1759), 180-182, 230
Maurice of Orange, 119, 132
Maxwell, James Clerk (1831-
1879), 259, 260McConneU, A. J., 287
McGee, W. J., 9
Medici, 105
Mcnelaos, 73
Menniger, R., 12
M6r6, Chevalier De, 145
Mersenne, Marin (1588-1648),
140Merz, J. T., 288
Mikami, Y., 34, 38, 229
Miller, George Abraham,XVIII, 5, 225, 287
Minkowski, H., 287
Minoans, 40, 41
Moebius, August Ferdinand
(1790-1868), 249; 245, 248,
287
Mohenjo Daro, 5
Moivre, Abraham De (1667-
1754), 184-186
Molina, E. C, 196, 200
Monge, Gaspard (1746-1818),
213-216, 194, 207, 211, 212,
244, 250, 272, 276, 287Montucla, Jean Etienne (1725-
1799), XV, 197
More, L:T., 151, 161
Moscow Papyru3, 18
Muir, T., XVI
Napoleon, 195, 201, 211, 216Naslr Al-Dln (Nasir-Eddin),
94-95, 109, 251
Navier, Louis M. H. (1786-
1836),
Neolithicum, 1, 7-9, 46
296 INDEX
Neper, John (1560-1617), 119-120, 123
Neugebauer, Otto, 17, 22, 25,
27, 29, 36, 37, 89. 73. 82Newton, Isaac (1648-1787),
149-154; 45, 138, 139, 142,
156, 160, 161, 166, 177, 179,
180, 185-187, 191, 192, 194,
198, 256Nicomachos, 72, 99Nieuwentijt, Bernard (1654-
1718), 160Non-Euclidean Geometry, 252-
254, 262, 271, 272, 282
Oldenburg, Henry (c. 1615-1677), 154
Oresme, Nicole (c. 1SSS-1SSS),
107, 134
Origen, (c. 186-854), 106Ornstein, Martha, 140Otho, Valentin (c. 1660-1606),
115
Pacioli, Luca (1445-c. 1514),110
Paleolithicum, 1, 9Pappos, 75-76; 80, 134, 144Papyrus Rhind, 18, 20, 36Parmenides (500 B.C.), 48Pascal, Blaise (1683-1668),
148; 137, 138, 140, 145-147,156, 157, 160, 184
Pascal, Ernesto, XHIPascal, Etienne, 140, 148Pasch, Moritz, 221
Peacock, George (1791-1868),258
Peet, T. E., 36Peirce, Benjamin (1809-1880),
266, 267Pell's Equation, 65, 74
Pentalpha, 9
Peurbach, George (1483-1461),108
Pestalozzi, J. H. (1746-1887),246
Phillips, H. B., 55Piazzi, G. (1746-1886), 206Picard, Emile (1856-1941), 278Pirenne, H., 99Pitiscus, Bartholom&us (1561-
1618), 115
Plato (489-848 B.C.), 52, 53,
55, 61, 65, 71, 77, 106, 115,
132, 211, 241Platonic Bodies, 47, 60, 274Plato of Tivoli (18th cent.), 102Plucker, Julius (1801-1868),
249-250; 245, 256, 267, 274,
287
Plutarch (c. 46-180), 61
Poincare, Henri (1854-1918),278-281; 269, 274, 287
Poinsot, Louis (1777-1859),216-217
Poisson, Simeon Denip (1781-
1840), 217-218; 145, 186,
226, 229, 258
Polis, 40, 101
Polo, Marco (d. 1884), 103
Poncelet, Victor (1788-1867),
215; 217, 244, 245, 248, 250,
262, 272Popova, Maria, 12
Prag, A., 161
Ptolemy, Claudius, 72-73; 69,
71, 92, 108, 144, 251Pythagoras (ft. 580-610 B.C.),
45Pythagoreans, 45-48; 8, 72, 99
Pythagoras, Theorem of, 28,
58, 77, 78
INDEX 297
Ramanujan, Srinivaaa (1887-
1980), 287
Rayleigh, Lord (1848-1919),
260
Regiomontanus (1436-1476),108-109, 123
Reidemeister, K., 81
Reiff, R., XVIII, 200
Reye, Karl Theodor (1837-
1919), 248
Rheticus (1514-1676), 115Ricci, Matteo, 96
Ricci-Curbastro, Gregorio(1853-1985), 282-283
Riemann, Bernitard (1886-
1866), 232-236; 174, 203,
219, 226, 255, 256, 262. 266,
268, 269, 274, 276, 278, 281,
282, 284, 287
Robbing, F. E., 75Robert of Chester, 97, 102
Roberval, Giles Persone De(1608-1676), XI
Romans, 69-77
Rome, A., 123
Roomen, Adriaen Van (1661-
1616), 115
Rope-stretchers, 7
Rouse Ball, W. W., (1860-1985)
XTVRoyal Society, 141Ruffini, Paolo (1765-1888),
190, 225, 226, 287Russell, Bertrand, 244, 267
Sachs, A., 37Sachs, Eva, 81
Saint Venant, Barre de (1797-
1886), 268
Saint Vinceut, Gregoire De(1684-1667), 53, 139, 160,
162
Salmon, George (1819-1914),
265
Sanford, Vera, XIVSarton, George, XIII, XVII,XVIII, 93, 286
Sassanians, 83, 84, 87-89
Scheffers, G., 275Scholasticism, XI, 106-107
Schouten, J. A., 266Schubert, Hermann (1848-
1911), 250, 284
Schwarz, Hermann Amandus(1843-1981), XI, 287
Sebdkht, Severus, 87
Sedgwick, W. T., XVIIISeki Kowa (1648-1708), 229
Seleucids, 28, 56, 57, 68
Serret, Joseph Alfred (1819-
1886), 276
Shih Huang Ti, 16
Siddhfintas, 84-85, 91
Singh, A. N., 37sinus. 92Smith, David l-.ugene (1860-
1944), XIII, XVI, 8, 12, 37,
38, 88, 97, 122Smith, H. J. S., (1886-1883),287
Snellius, Willebrord (1580-
1686), 157Sombart, W., 108Speidel, J., 121
Speiser, A., XVI, 11, 169, 199Spier, L., 6, 12
Staudt, Karl G. C. von (1798-
1867), 248; 246, 249, 287Steiner, Jacob (1796-1863),
246-248; 203, 245, 287Stevin, Simon (1648-1680),
119; 55, 127, 162, 205Stieltjes, Thomas Joannes
(1866-1894), 276-277
298 INDEX
Stirling, James (1692-1770),
185, 186
Stokes, George Gabriel (1819-
190S), 260Stoner, Jean, 122
Struik, D. J., 182, 287Strove, W. W., 36Studv, Edward (1862-1922),
251Stilvasutras, 32-33
sunya, 87Suter, H., 89, 96swastica, 9
Swedenborg, Emanuel (1688-
1772), 194
Sylow, Ludwig (1832-1918),
287Sylvester II, 101
Sylvester, James Joseph (1814-
1897), 261-263; 260, 267, 287Syracuse, 40, 57, 58, 61, 69
Tacquet, Andrf (1812-1660),
107, 139, 140Tait, Peter Guthrie (1831-
1901), 287T'ang, 34, 96Tannery, Jules, 162 ^Tannery, Paul (1848-1904),
42, 50, 81, 162, 275Tartaglia, Nicole (c. 1499-
1667), 112, 113, 122, 126Taylor, Brook (1686-1781),
187-188, 169, 191, 200Ten Classics, 34-35, 96Tennyson, A., 35Thales (c. 624-647 B.C.), 41Theaetetos, 52, 61
Theodosios I, 83Thomas Aquinas, St. (c. 1226-
1274), 106
Thomas, J., 81
Thompson, D. W., 76Thompson, J. E. S., 12Thompson, William, see KelvinThureau-Dangln, F.,' 17, 37Timerding, H. E., XVTodhunter, J., XVIITorricelli, Evangelista (1608-
1647), 127, 129, 138Treviso, 110triangular numbers, 8, 46trisection of angle, 44-45Tropfke, Johannes (1868-
1939), XVTsu, Ch'ung Chi, 96Turajeff, B. A., 36Tyler, H. W., XVIII
Valerio, Luca (1552-1618), 127Vasari, Giorgio, 110Ver Eecke, P., 80Viete," Frangois (1640-1603),
115-118, 134, 136,226Vlacq, Adriaan (1600-c. 1667),
119Vogt, H., 81Voigt, W., 283Voltaire (1694-1778), 76, 179,
180, 182
Volterra, V., 281, 282Voes, A., XV
Waerden, B. L. Van der, 22,
50, 82, 251
Walker, Helen M., XVIIWallis, John (1616-1763), 141;
136, 138, 142, 150Weber, Heinrich (1842-1913),240
Weber, Wilhelm (1804-1891),
208Weierstrass, Karl (1815-
1897), 236-239; 53, 220-222,
INDEX 299
235, 241, 248, 262, 269, 275,276, 287
Whitehead, A. N., 267Wieleitner, Heinrich (1874-
1931), XV, XVIWillcocks, 18Winter, H. J. J., 200Witt, Johan De (1625-1672),
136, 148Wittfogel, K. A., 38Woepcke, E., 71. 88
Woodhouse, Robert (1773-1827), 199, 256
Wright, Edward (d. 1615), 121
Yeldham, F. A., 123
Zeno of Elea, 48-50, 53, 82,160, 177, 222
Zeuthen, Hieronymus Georg(1839-1920), XV, 42, 250
Zinner, E., 123
l£V-
Concise
History of
Mathematics
STRUIK
14s.net
BELL
BELL MATHEMATICS BOOKS
A CONCISE
HISTORY OF
MATHEMATICS
STRUIK
Mathematics in Action
byO. G. SUTTON, C.B.E., F.R.S., D.Sc, Director of the
Meteorological Office, recently Bashforth Professor ofMathematical
Physics, Royal Military College ofScience, Shrivenham
Uniform with the two books below, this is an account of the
contribution ofmathematics to physical science. It examines
the application of mathematics to problems in various tech-
nical fields, such as trajectories, calculating machines, radio,
and supersonic flight. A book that can be easily read by those
who know little of mathematics, and also with profit by the
specialist student. Illustrated. 16s. net
Mathematics and the Imagination
by EDWARD KASNER, Adrian Professor of
Mathematics, Columbia University, and}. NEWMANMANCHESTER guardian: 'A light touch, salted with wit . . .
takes the reader through a wide gamut of difficult ideas . . .
gives an unusually complete outline of the modern mind's
relation with the world that is countable and measurable.'
Illustrated. 16s. net
Mathematics, Queen and Servant of Science
by E. T. BELE, Professor ofMathematics, California
Institute of Technology
THE electrician : '.. . fascinating narrative of the philoso-
phies and personalities that form the background of mathe-
matics as it exists today. It is an inspiring and stimulating
story which is of the greatest interest to laymen and profes-
sionals alike and will appeal to all who seek what lies beyond
the limited approach of most textbooks on the subject.'
Illustrated. 21s. net
G. BELL AND SONS LTDYORK HOUSE, PORTUGAL ST., LONDON, W.C.2
BELI.